| Produced by David Widger. The previous edition was updated by Jose | 
 | Menendez. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |                    THE ADVENTURES OF TOM SAWYER | 
 |                                 BY | 
 |                             MARK TWAIN | 
 |                      (Samuel Langhorne Clemens) | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |                            P R E F A C E | 
 |  | 
 | MOST of the adventures recorded in this book really occurred; one or | 
 | two were experiences of my own, the rest those of boys who were | 
 | schoolmates of mine. Huck Finn is drawn from life; Tom Sawyer also, but | 
 | not from an individual--he is a combination of the characteristics of | 
 | three boys whom I knew, and therefore belongs to the composite order of | 
 | architecture. | 
 |  | 
 | The odd superstitions touched upon were all prevalent among children | 
 | and slaves in the West at the period of this story--that is to say, | 
 | thirty or forty years ago. | 
 |  | 
 | Although my book is intended mainly for the entertainment of boys and | 
 | girls, I hope it will not be shunned by men and women on that account, | 
 | for part of my plan has been to try to pleasantly remind adults of what | 
 | they once were themselves, and of how they felt and thought and talked, | 
 | and what queer enterprises they sometimes engaged in. | 
 |  | 
 |                                                             THE AUTHOR. | 
 |  | 
 | HARTFORD, 1876. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |                           T O M   S A W Y E R | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER I | 
 |  | 
 | "TOM!" | 
 |  | 
 | No answer. | 
 |  | 
 | "TOM!" | 
 |  | 
 | No answer. | 
 |  | 
 | "What's gone with that boy,  I wonder? You TOM!" | 
 |  | 
 | No answer. | 
 |  | 
 | The old lady pulled her spectacles down and looked over them about the | 
 | room; then she put them up and looked out under them. She seldom or | 
 | never looked THROUGH them for so small a thing as a boy; they were her | 
 | state pair, the pride of her heart, and were built for "style," not | 
 | service--she could have seen through a pair of stove-lids just as well. | 
 | She looked perplexed for a moment, and then said, not fiercely, but | 
 | still loud enough for the furniture to hear: | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I lay if I get hold of you I'll--" | 
 |  | 
 | She did not finish, for by this time she was bending down and punching | 
 | under the bed with the broom, and so she needed breath to punctuate the | 
 | punches with. She resurrected nothing but the cat. | 
 |  | 
 | "I never did see the beat of that boy!" | 
 |  | 
 | She went to the open door and stood in it and looked out among the | 
 | tomato vines and "jimpson" weeds that constituted the garden. No Tom. | 
 | So she lifted up her voice at an angle calculated for distance and | 
 | shouted: | 
 |  | 
 | "Y-o-u-u TOM!" | 
 |  | 
 | There was a slight noise behind her and she turned just in time to | 
 | seize a small boy by the slack of his roundabout and arrest his flight. | 
 |  | 
 | "There! I might 'a' thought of that closet. What you been doing in | 
 | there?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Nothing." | 
 |  | 
 | "Nothing! Look at your hands. And look at your mouth. What IS that | 
 | truck?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I don't know, aunt." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I know. It's jam--that's what it is. Forty times I've said if | 
 | you didn't let that jam alone I'd skin you. Hand me that switch." | 
 |  | 
 | The switch hovered in the air--the peril was desperate-- | 
 |  | 
 | "My! Look behind you, aunt!" | 
 |  | 
 | The old lady whirled round, and snatched her skirts out of danger. The | 
 | lad fled on the instant, scrambled up the high board-fence, and | 
 | disappeared over it. | 
 |  | 
 | His aunt Polly stood surprised a moment, and then broke into a gentle | 
 | laugh. | 
 |  | 
 | "Hang the boy, can't I never learn anything? Ain't he played me tricks | 
 | enough like that for me to be looking out for him by this time? But old | 
 | fools is the biggest fools there is. Can't learn an old dog new tricks, | 
 | as the saying is. But my goodness, he never plays them alike, two days, | 
 | and how is a body to know what's coming? He 'pears to know just how | 
 | long he can torment me before I get my dander up, and he knows if he | 
 | can make out to put me off for a minute or make me laugh, it's all down | 
 | again and I can't hit him a lick. I ain't doing my duty by that boy, | 
 | and that's the Lord's truth, goodness knows. Spare the rod and spile | 
 | the child, as the Good Book says. I'm a laying up sin and suffering for | 
 | us both, I know. He's full of the Old Scratch, but laws-a-me! he's my | 
 | own dead sister's boy, poor thing, and I ain't got the heart to lash | 
 | him, somehow. Every time I let him off, my conscience does hurt me so, | 
 | and every time I hit him my old heart most breaks. Well-a-well, man | 
 | that is born of woman is of few days and full of trouble, as the | 
 | Scripture says, and I reckon it's so. He'll play hookey this evening, * | 
 | and [* Southwestern for "afternoon"] I'll just be obleeged to make him | 
 | work, to-morrow, to punish him. It's mighty hard to make him work | 
 | Saturdays, when all the boys is having holiday, but he hates work more | 
 | than he hates anything else, and I've GOT to do some of my duty by him, | 
 | or I'll be the ruination of the child." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom did play hookey, and he had a very good time. He got back home | 
 | barely in season to help Jim, the small colored boy, saw next-day's | 
 | wood and split the kindlings before supper--at least he was there in | 
 | time to tell his adventures to Jim while Jim did three-fourths of the | 
 | work. Tom's younger brother (or rather half-brother) Sid was already | 
 | through with his part of the work (picking up chips), for he was a | 
 | quiet boy, and had no adventurous, troublesome ways. | 
 |  | 
 | While Tom was eating his supper, and stealing sugar as opportunity | 
 | offered, Aunt Polly asked him questions that were full of guile, and | 
 | very deep--for she wanted to trap him into damaging revealments. Like | 
 | many other simple-hearted souls, it was her pet vanity to believe she | 
 | was endowed with a talent for dark and mysterious diplomacy, and she | 
 | loved to contemplate her most transparent devices as marvels of low | 
 | cunning. Said she: | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, it was middling warm in school, warn't it?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes'm." | 
 |  | 
 | "Powerful warm, warn't it?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes'm." | 
 |  | 
 | "Didn't you want to go in a-swimming, Tom?" | 
 |  | 
 | A bit of a scare shot through Tom--a touch of uncomfortable suspicion. | 
 | He searched Aunt Polly's face, but it told him nothing. So he said: | 
 |  | 
 | "No'm--well, not very much." | 
 |  | 
 | The old lady reached out her hand and felt Tom's shirt, and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "But you ain't too warm now, though." And it flattered her to reflect | 
 | that she had discovered that the shirt was dry without anybody knowing | 
 | that that was what she had in her mind. But in spite of her, Tom knew | 
 | where the wind lay, now. So he forestalled what might be the next move: | 
 |  | 
 | "Some of us pumped on our heads--mine's damp yet. See?" | 
 |  | 
 | Aunt Polly was vexed to think she had overlooked that bit of | 
 | circumstantial evidence, and missed a trick. Then she had a new | 
 | inspiration: | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, you didn't have to undo your shirt collar where I sewed it, to | 
 | pump on your head, did you? Unbutton your jacket!" | 
 |  | 
 | The trouble vanished out of Tom's face. He opened his jacket. His | 
 | shirt collar was securely sewed. | 
 |  | 
 | "Bother! Well, go 'long with you. I'd made sure you'd played hookey | 
 | and been a-swimming. But I forgive ye, Tom. I reckon you're a kind of a | 
 | singed cat, as the saying is--better'n you look. THIS time." | 
 |  | 
 | She was half sorry her sagacity had miscarried, and half glad that Tom | 
 | had stumbled into obedient conduct for once. | 
 |  | 
 | But Sidney said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, now, if I didn't think you sewed his collar with white thread, | 
 | but it's black." | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, I did sew it with white! Tom!" | 
 |  | 
 | But Tom did not wait for the rest. As he went out at the door he said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Siddy, I'll lick you for that." | 
 |  | 
 | In a safe place Tom examined two large needles which were thrust into | 
 | the lapels of his jacket, and had thread bound about them--one needle | 
 | carried white thread and the other black. He said: | 
 |  | 
 | "She'd never noticed if it hadn't been for Sid. Confound it! sometimes | 
 | she sews it with white, and sometimes she sews it with black. I wish to | 
 | geeminy she'd stick to one or t'other--I can't keep the run of 'em. But | 
 | I bet you I'll lam Sid for that. I'll learn him!" | 
 |  | 
 | He was not the Model Boy of the village. He knew the model boy very | 
 | well though--and loathed him. | 
 |  | 
 | Within two minutes, or even less, he had forgotten all his troubles. | 
 | Not because his troubles were one whit less heavy and bitter to him | 
 | than a man's are to a man, but because a new and powerful interest bore | 
 | them down and drove them out of his mind for the time--just as men's | 
 | misfortunes are forgotten in the excitement of new enterprises. This | 
 | new interest was a valued novelty in whistling, which he had just | 
 | acquired from a negro, and he was suffering to practise it undisturbed. | 
 | It consisted in a peculiar bird-like turn, a sort of liquid warble, | 
 | produced by touching the tongue to the roof of the mouth at short | 
 | intervals in the midst of the music--the reader probably remembers how | 
 | to do it, if he has ever been a boy. Diligence and attention soon gave | 
 | him the knack of it, and he strode down the street with his mouth full | 
 | of harmony and his soul full of gratitude. He felt much as an | 
 | astronomer feels who has discovered a new planet--no doubt, as far as | 
 | strong, deep, unalloyed pleasure is concerned, the advantage was with | 
 | the boy, not the astronomer. | 
 |  | 
 | The summer evenings were long. It was not dark, yet. Presently Tom | 
 | checked his whistle. A stranger was before him--a boy a shade larger | 
 | than himself. A new-comer of any age or either sex was an impressive | 
 | curiosity in the poor little shabby village of St. Petersburg. This boy | 
 | was well dressed, too--well dressed on a week-day. This was simply | 
 | astounding. His cap was a dainty thing, his close-buttoned blue cloth | 
 | roundabout was new and natty, and so were his pantaloons. He had shoes | 
 | on--and it was only Friday. He even wore a necktie, a bright bit of | 
 | ribbon. He had a citified air about him that ate into Tom's vitals. The | 
 | more Tom stared at the splendid marvel, the higher he turned up his | 
 | nose at his finery and the shabbier and shabbier his own outfit seemed | 
 | to him to grow. Neither boy spoke. If one moved, the other moved--but | 
 | only sidewise, in a circle; they kept face to face and eye to eye all | 
 | the time. Finally Tom said: | 
 |  | 
 | "I can lick you!" | 
 |  | 
 | "I'd like to see you try it." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I can do it." | 
 |  | 
 | "No you can't, either." | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes I can." | 
 |  | 
 | "No you can't." | 
 |  | 
 | "I can." | 
 |  | 
 | "You can't." | 
 |  | 
 | "Can!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Can't!" | 
 |  | 
 | An uncomfortable pause. Then Tom said: | 
 |  | 
 | "What's your name?" | 
 |  | 
 | "'Tisn't any of your business, maybe." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well I 'low I'll MAKE it my business." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well why don't you?" | 
 |  | 
 | "If you say much, I will." | 
 |  | 
 | "Much--much--MUCH. There now." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, you think you're mighty smart, DON'T you? I could lick you with | 
 | one hand tied behind me, if I wanted to." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well why don't you DO it? You SAY you can do it." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well I WILL, if you fool with me." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh yes--I've seen whole families in the same fix." | 
 |  | 
 | "Smarty! You think you're SOME, now, DON'T you? Oh, what a hat!" | 
 |  | 
 | "You can lump that hat if you don't like it. I dare you to knock it | 
 | off--and anybody that'll take a dare will suck eggs." | 
 |  | 
 | "You're a liar!" | 
 |  | 
 | "You're another." | 
 |  | 
 | "You're a fighting liar and dasn't take it up." | 
 |  | 
 | "Aw--take a walk!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Say--if you give me much more of your sass I'll take and bounce a | 
 | rock off'n your head." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, of COURSE you will." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well I WILL." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well why don't you DO it then? What do you keep SAYING you will for? | 
 | Why don't you DO it? It's because you're afraid." | 
 |  | 
 | "I AIN'T afraid." | 
 |  | 
 | "You are." | 
 |  | 
 | "I ain't." | 
 |  | 
 | "You are." | 
 |  | 
 | Another pause, and more eying and sidling around each other. Presently | 
 | they were shoulder to shoulder. Tom said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Get away from here!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Go away yourself!" | 
 |  | 
 | "I won't." | 
 |  | 
 | "I won't either." | 
 |  | 
 | So they stood, each with a foot placed at an angle as a brace, and | 
 | both shoving with might and main, and glowering at each other with | 
 | hate. But neither could get an advantage. After struggling till both | 
 | were hot and flushed, each relaxed his strain with watchful caution, | 
 | and Tom said: | 
 |  | 
 | "You're a coward and a pup. I'll tell my big brother on you, and he | 
 | can thrash you with his little finger, and I'll make him do it, too." | 
 |  | 
 | "What do I care for your big brother? I've got a brother that's bigger | 
 | than he is--and what's more, he can throw him over that fence, too." | 
 | [Both brothers were imaginary.] | 
 |  | 
 | "That's a lie." | 
 |  | 
 | "YOUR saying so don't make it so." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom drew a line in the dust with his big toe, and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "I dare you to step over that, and I'll lick you till you can't stand | 
 | up. Anybody that'll take a dare will steal sheep." | 
 |  | 
 | The new boy stepped over promptly, and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Now you said you'd do it, now let's see you do it." | 
 |  | 
 | "Don't you crowd me now; you better look out." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, you SAID you'd do it--why don't you do it?" | 
 |  | 
 | "By jingo! for two cents I WILL do it." | 
 |  | 
 | The new boy took two broad coppers out of his pocket and held them out | 
 | with derision. Tom struck them to the ground. In an instant both boys | 
 | were rolling and tumbling in the dirt, gripped together like cats; and | 
 | for the space of a minute they tugged and tore at each other's hair and | 
 | clothes, punched and scratched each other's nose, and covered | 
 | themselves with dust and glory. Presently the confusion took form, and | 
 | through the fog of battle Tom appeared, seated astride the new boy, and | 
 | pounding him with his fists. "Holler 'nuff!" said he. | 
 |  | 
 | The boy only struggled to free himself. He was crying--mainly from rage. | 
 |  | 
 | "Holler 'nuff!"--and the pounding went on. | 
 |  | 
 | At last the stranger got out a smothered "'Nuff!" and Tom let him up | 
 | and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Now that'll learn you. Better look out who you're fooling with next | 
 | time." | 
 |  | 
 | The new boy went off brushing the dust from his clothes, sobbing, | 
 | snuffling, and occasionally looking back and shaking his head and | 
 | threatening what he would do to Tom the "next time he caught him out." | 
 | To which Tom responded with jeers, and started off in high feather, and | 
 | as soon as his back was turned the new boy snatched up a stone, threw | 
 | it and hit him between the shoulders and then turned tail and ran like | 
 | an antelope. Tom chased the traitor home, and thus found out where he | 
 | lived. He then held a position at the gate for some time, daring the | 
 | enemy to come outside, but the enemy only made faces at him through the | 
 | window and declined. At last the enemy's mother appeared, and called | 
 | Tom a bad, vicious, vulgar child, and ordered him away. So he went | 
 | away; but he said he "'lowed" to "lay" for that boy. | 
 |  | 
 | He got home pretty late that night, and when he climbed cautiously in | 
 | at the window, he uncovered an ambuscade, in the person of his aunt; | 
 | and when she saw the state his clothes were in her resolution to turn | 
 | his Saturday holiday into captivity at hard labor became adamantine in | 
 | its firmness. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER II | 
 |  | 
 | SATURDAY morning was come, and all the summer world was bright and | 
 | fresh, and brimming with life. There was a song in every heart; and if | 
 | the heart was young the music issued at the lips. There was cheer in | 
 | every face and a spring in every step. The locust-trees were in bloom | 
 | and the fragrance of the blossoms filled the air. Cardiff Hill, beyond | 
 | the village and above it, was green with vegetation and it lay just far | 
 | enough away to seem a Delectable Land, dreamy, reposeful, and inviting. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom appeared on the sidewalk with a bucket of whitewash and a | 
 | long-handled brush. He surveyed the fence, and all gladness left him and | 
 | a deep melancholy settled down upon his spirit. Thirty yards of board | 
 | fence nine feet high. Life to him seemed hollow, and existence but a | 
 | burden. Sighing, he dipped his brush and passed it along the topmost | 
 | plank; repeated the operation; did it again; compared the insignificant | 
 | whitewashed streak with the far-reaching continent of unwhitewashed | 
 | fence, and sat down on a tree-box discouraged. Jim came skipping out at | 
 | the gate with a tin pail, and singing Buffalo Gals. Bringing water from | 
 | the town pump had always been hateful work in Tom's eyes, before, but | 
 | now it did not strike him so. He remembered that there was company at | 
 | the pump. White, mulatto, and negro boys and girls were always there | 
 | waiting their turns, resting, trading playthings, quarrelling, | 
 | fighting, skylarking. And he remembered that although the pump was only | 
 | a hundred and fifty yards off, Jim never got back with a bucket of | 
 | water under an hour--and even then somebody generally had to go after | 
 | him. Tom said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Say, Jim, I'll fetch the water if you'll whitewash some." | 
 |  | 
 | Jim shook his head and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Can't, Mars Tom. Ole missis, she tole me I got to go an' git dis | 
 | water an' not stop foolin' roun' wid anybody. She say she spec' Mars | 
 | Tom gwine to ax me to whitewash, an' so she tole me go 'long an' 'tend | 
 | to my own business--she 'lowed SHE'D 'tend to de whitewashin'." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, never you mind what she said, Jim. That's the way she always | 
 | talks. Gimme the bucket--I won't be gone only a a minute. SHE won't | 
 | ever know." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, I dasn't, Mars Tom. Ole missis she'd take an' tar de head off'n | 
 | me. 'Deed she would." | 
 |  | 
 | "SHE! She never licks anybody--whacks 'em over the head with her | 
 | thimble--and who cares for that, I'd like to know. She talks awful, but | 
 | talk don't hurt--anyways it don't if she don't cry. Jim, I'll give you | 
 | a marvel. I'll give you a white alley!" | 
 |  | 
 | Jim began to waver. | 
 |  | 
 | "White alley, Jim! And it's a bully taw." | 
 |  | 
 | "My! Dat's a mighty gay marvel, I tell you! But Mars Tom I's powerful | 
 | 'fraid ole missis--" | 
 |  | 
 | "And besides, if you will I'll show you my sore toe." | 
 |  | 
 | Jim was only human--this attraction was too much for him. He put down | 
 | his pail, took the white alley, and bent over the toe with absorbing | 
 | interest while the bandage was being unwound. In another moment he was | 
 | flying down the street with his pail and a tingling rear, Tom was | 
 | whitewashing with vigor, and Aunt Polly was retiring from the field | 
 | with a slipper in her hand and triumph in her eye. | 
 |  | 
 | But Tom's energy did not last. He began to think of the fun he had | 
 | planned for this day, and his sorrows multiplied. Soon the free boys | 
 | would come tripping along on all sorts of delicious expeditions, and | 
 | they would make a world of fun of him for having to work--the very | 
 | thought of it burnt him like fire. He got out his worldly wealth and | 
 | examined it--bits of toys, marbles, and trash; enough to buy an | 
 | exchange of WORK, maybe, but not half enough to buy so much as half an | 
 | hour of pure freedom. So he returned his straitened means to his | 
 | pocket, and gave up the idea of trying to buy the boys. At this dark | 
 | and hopeless moment an inspiration burst upon him! Nothing less than a | 
 | great, magnificent inspiration. | 
 |  | 
 | He took up his brush and went tranquilly to work. Ben Rogers hove in | 
 | sight presently--the very boy, of all boys, whose ridicule he had been | 
 | dreading. Ben's gait was the hop-skip-and-jump--proof enough that his | 
 | heart was light and his anticipations high. He was eating an apple, and | 
 | giving a long, melodious whoop, at intervals, followed by a deep-toned | 
 | ding-dong-dong, ding-dong-dong, for he was personating a steamboat. As | 
 | he drew near, he slackened speed, took the middle of the street, leaned | 
 | far over to starboard and rounded to ponderously and with laborious | 
 | pomp and circumstance--for he was personating the Big Missouri, and | 
 | considered himself to be drawing nine feet of water. He was boat and | 
 | captain and engine-bells combined, so he had to imagine himself | 
 | standing on his own hurricane-deck giving the orders and executing them: | 
 |  | 
 | "Stop her, sir! Ting-a-ling-ling!" The headway ran almost out, and he | 
 | drew up slowly toward the sidewalk. | 
 |  | 
 | "Ship up to back! Ting-a-ling-ling!" His arms straightened and | 
 | stiffened down his sides. | 
 |  | 
 | "Set her back on the stabboard! Ting-a-ling-ling! Chow! ch-chow-wow! | 
 | Chow!" His right hand, meantime, describing stately circles--for it was | 
 | representing a forty-foot wheel. | 
 |  | 
 | "Let her go back on the labboard! Ting-a-lingling! Chow-ch-chow-chow!" | 
 | The left hand began to describe circles. | 
 |  | 
 | "Stop the stabboard! Ting-a-ling-ling! Stop the labboard! Come ahead | 
 | on the stabboard! Stop her! Let your outside turn over slow! | 
 | Ting-a-ling-ling! Chow-ow-ow! Get out that head-line! LIVELY now! | 
 | Come--out with your spring-line--what're you about there! Take a turn | 
 | round that stump with the bight of it! Stand by that stage, now--let her | 
 | go! Done with the engines, sir! Ting-a-ling-ling! SH'T! S'H'T! SH'T!" | 
 | (trying the gauge-cocks). | 
 |  | 
 | Tom went on whitewashing--paid no attention to the steamboat. Ben | 
 | stared a moment and then said: "Hi-YI! YOU'RE up a stump, ain't you!" | 
 |  | 
 | No answer. Tom surveyed his last touch with the eye of an artist, then | 
 | he gave his brush another gentle sweep and surveyed the result, as | 
 | before. Ben ranged up alongside of him. Tom's mouth watered for the | 
 | apple, but he stuck to his work. Ben said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Hello, old chap, you got to work, hey?" | 
 |  | 
 | Tom wheeled suddenly and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, it's you, Ben! I warn't noticing." | 
 |  | 
 | "Say--I'm going in a-swimming, I am. Don't you wish you could? But of | 
 | course you'd druther WORK--wouldn't you? Course you would!" | 
 |  | 
 | Tom contemplated the boy a bit, and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "What do you call work?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, ain't THAT work?" | 
 |  | 
 | Tom resumed his whitewashing, and answered carelessly: | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, maybe it is, and maybe it ain't. All I know, is, it suits Tom | 
 | Sawyer." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh come, now, you don't mean to let on that you LIKE it?" | 
 |  | 
 | The brush continued to move. | 
 |  | 
 | "Like it? Well, I don't see why I oughtn't to like it. Does a boy get | 
 | a chance to whitewash a fence every day?" | 
 |  | 
 | That put the thing in a new light. Ben stopped nibbling his apple. Tom | 
 | swept his brush daintily back and forth--stepped back to note the | 
 | effect--added a touch here and there--criticised the effect again--Ben | 
 | watching every move and getting more and more interested, more and more | 
 | absorbed. Presently he said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Say, Tom, let ME whitewash a little." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom considered, was about to consent; but he altered his mind: | 
 |  | 
 | "No--no--I reckon it wouldn't hardly do, Ben. You see, Aunt Polly's | 
 | awful particular about this fence--right here on the street, you know | 
 | --but if it was the back fence I wouldn't mind and SHE wouldn't. Yes, | 
 | she's awful particular about this fence; it's got to be done very | 
 | careful; I reckon there ain't one boy in a thousand, maybe two | 
 | thousand, that can do it the way it's got to be done." | 
 |  | 
 | "No--is that so? Oh come, now--lemme just try. Only just a little--I'd | 
 | let YOU, if you was me, Tom." | 
 |  | 
 | "Ben, I'd like to, honest injun; but Aunt Polly--well, Jim wanted to | 
 | do it, but she wouldn't let him; Sid wanted to do it, and she wouldn't | 
 | let Sid. Now don't you see how I'm fixed? If you was to tackle this | 
 | fence and anything was to happen to it--" | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, shucks, I'll be just as careful. Now lemme try. Say--I'll give | 
 | you the core of my apple." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, here--No, Ben, now don't. I'm afeard--" | 
 |  | 
 | "I'll give you ALL of it!" | 
 |  | 
 | Tom gave up the brush with reluctance in his face, but alacrity in his | 
 | heart. And while the late steamer Big Missouri worked and sweated in | 
 | the sun, the retired artist sat on a barrel in the shade close by, | 
 | dangled his legs, munched his apple, and planned the slaughter of more | 
 | innocents. There was no lack of material; boys happened along every | 
 | little while; they came to jeer, but remained to whitewash. By the time | 
 | Ben was fagged out, Tom had traded the next chance to Billy Fisher for | 
 | a kite, in good repair; and when he played out, Johnny Miller bought in | 
 | for a dead rat and a string to swing it with--and so on, and so on, | 
 | hour after hour. And when the middle of the afternoon came, from being | 
 | a poor poverty-stricken boy in the morning, Tom was literally rolling | 
 | in wealth. He had besides the things before mentioned, twelve marbles, | 
 | part of a jews-harp, a piece of blue bottle-glass to look through, a | 
 | spool cannon, a key that wouldn't unlock anything, a fragment of chalk, | 
 | a glass stopper of a decanter, a tin soldier, a couple of tadpoles, six | 
 | fire-crackers, a kitten with only one eye, a brass doorknob, a | 
 | dog-collar--but no dog--the handle of a knife, four pieces of | 
 | orange-peel, and a dilapidated old window sash. | 
 |  | 
 | He had had a nice, good, idle time all the while--plenty of company | 
 | --and the fence had three coats of whitewash on it! If he hadn't run out | 
 | of whitewash he would have bankrupted every boy in the village. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom said to himself that it was not such a hollow world, after all. He | 
 | had discovered a great law of human action, without knowing it--namely, | 
 | that in order to make a man or a boy covet a thing, it is only | 
 | necessary to make the thing difficult to attain. If he had been a great | 
 | and wise philosopher, like the writer of this book, he would now have | 
 | comprehended that Work consists of whatever a body is OBLIGED to do, | 
 | and that Play consists of whatever a body is not obliged to do. And | 
 | this would help him to understand why constructing artificial flowers | 
 | or performing on a tread-mill is work, while rolling ten-pins or | 
 | climbing Mont Blanc is only amusement. There are wealthy gentlemen in | 
 | England who drive four-horse passenger-coaches twenty or thirty miles | 
 | on a daily line, in the summer, because the privilege costs them | 
 | considerable money; but if they were offered wages for the service, | 
 | that would turn it into work and then they would resign. | 
 |  | 
 | The boy mused awhile over the substantial change which had taken place | 
 | in his worldly circumstances, and then wended toward headquarters to | 
 | report. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER III | 
 |  | 
 | TOM presented himself before Aunt Polly, who was sitting by an open | 
 | window in a pleasant rearward apartment, which was bedroom, | 
 | breakfast-room, dining-room, and library, combined. The balmy summer | 
 | air, the restful quiet, the odor of the flowers, and the drowsing murmur | 
 | of the bees had had their effect, and she was nodding over her knitting | 
 | --for she had no company but the cat, and it was asleep in her lap. Her | 
 | spectacles were propped up on her gray head for safety. She had thought | 
 | that of course Tom had deserted long ago, and she wondered at seeing him | 
 | place himself in her power again in this intrepid way. He said: "Mayn't | 
 | I go and play now, aunt?" | 
 |  | 
 | "What, a'ready? How much have you done?" | 
 |  | 
 | "It's all done, aunt." | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, don't lie to me--I can't bear it." | 
 |  | 
 | "I ain't, aunt; it IS all done." | 
 |  | 
 | Aunt Polly placed small trust in such evidence. She went out to see | 
 | for herself; and she would have been content to find twenty per cent. | 
 | of Tom's statement true. When she found the entire fence whitewashed, | 
 | and not only whitewashed but elaborately coated and recoated, and even | 
 | a streak added to the ground, her astonishment was almost unspeakable. | 
 | She said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I never! There's no getting round it, you can work when you're | 
 | a mind to, Tom." And then she diluted the compliment by adding, "But | 
 | it's powerful seldom you're a mind to, I'm bound to say. Well, go 'long | 
 | and play; but mind you get back some time in a week, or I'll tan you." | 
 |  | 
 | She was so overcome by the splendor of his achievement that she took | 
 | him into the closet and selected a choice apple and delivered it to | 
 | him, along with an improving lecture upon the added value and flavor a | 
 | treat took to itself when it came without sin through virtuous effort. | 
 | And while she closed with a happy Scriptural flourish, he "hooked" a | 
 | doughnut. | 
 |  | 
 | Then he skipped out, and saw Sid just starting up the outside stairway | 
 | that led to the back rooms on the second floor. Clods were handy and | 
 | the air was full of them in a twinkling. They raged around Sid like a | 
 | hail-storm; and before Aunt Polly could collect her surprised faculties | 
 | and sally to the rescue, six or seven clods had taken personal effect, | 
 | and Tom was over the fence and gone. There was a gate, but as a general | 
 | thing he was too crowded for time to make use of it. His soul was at | 
 | peace, now that he had settled with Sid for calling attention to his | 
 | black thread and getting him into trouble. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom skirted the block, and came round into a muddy alley that led by | 
 | the back of his aunt's cow-stable. He presently got safely beyond the | 
 | reach of capture and punishment, and hastened toward the public square | 
 | of the village, where two "military" companies of boys had met for | 
 | conflict, according to previous appointment. Tom was General of one of | 
 | these armies, Joe Harper (a bosom friend) General of the other. These | 
 | two great commanders did not condescend to fight in person--that being | 
 | better suited to the still smaller fry--but sat together on an eminence | 
 | and conducted the field operations by orders delivered through | 
 | aides-de-camp. Tom's army won a great victory, after a long and | 
 | hard-fought battle. Then the dead were counted, prisoners exchanged, | 
 | the terms of the next disagreement agreed upon, and the day for the | 
 | necessary battle appointed; after which the armies fell into line and | 
 | marched away, and Tom turned homeward alone. | 
 |  | 
 | As he was passing by the house where Jeff Thatcher lived, he saw a new | 
 | girl in the garden--a lovely little blue-eyed creature with yellow hair | 
 | plaited into two long-tails, white summer frock and embroidered | 
 | pantalettes. The fresh-crowned hero fell without firing a shot. A | 
 | certain Amy Lawrence vanished out of his heart and left not even a | 
 | memory of herself behind. He had thought he loved her to distraction; | 
 | he had regarded his passion as adoration; and behold it was only a poor | 
 | little evanescent partiality. He had been months winning her; she had | 
 | confessed hardly a week ago; he had been the happiest and the proudest | 
 | boy in the world only seven short days, and here in one instant of time | 
 | she had gone out of his heart like a casual stranger whose visit is | 
 | done. | 
 |  | 
 | He worshipped this new angel with furtive eye, till he saw that she | 
 | had discovered him; then he pretended he did not know she was present, | 
 | and began to "show off" in all sorts of absurd boyish ways, in order to | 
 | win her admiration. He kept up this grotesque foolishness for some | 
 | time; but by-and-by, while he was in the midst of some dangerous | 
 | gymnastic performances, he glanced aside and saw that the little girl | 
 | was wending her way toward the house. Tom came up to the fence and | 
 | leaned on it, grieving, and hoping she would tarry yet awhile longer. | 
 | She halted a moment on the steps and then moved toward the door. Tom | 
 | heaved a great sigh as she put her foot on the threshold. But his face | 
 | lit up, right away, for she tossed a pansy over the fence a moment | 
 | before she disappeared. | 
 |  | 
 | The boy ran around and stopped within a foot or two of the flower, and | 
 | then shaded his eyes with his hand and began to look down street as if | 
 | he had discovered something of interest going on in that direction. | 
 | Presently he picked up a straw and began trying to balance it on his | 
 | nose, with his head tilted far back; and as he moved from side to side, | 
 | in his efforts, he edged nearer and nearer toward the pansy; finally | 
 | his bare foot rested upon it, his pliant toes closed upon it, and he | 
 | hopped away with the treasure and disappeared round the corner. But | 
 | only for a minute--only while he could button the flower inside his | 
 | jacket, next his heart--or next his stomach, possibly, for he was not | 
 | much posted in anatomy, and not hypercritical, anyway. | 
 |  | 
 | He returned, now, and hung about the fence till nightfall, "showing | 
 | off," as before; but the girl never exhibited herself again, though Tom | 
 | comforted himself a little with the hope that she had been near some | 
 | window, meantime, and been aware of his attentions. Finally he strode | 
 | home reluctantly, with his poor head full of visions. | 
 |  | 
 | All through supper his spirits were so high that his aunt wondered | 
 | "what had got into the child." He took a good scolding about clodding | 
 | Sid, and did not seem to mind it in the least. He tried to steal sugar | 
 | under his aunt's very nose, and got his knuckles rapped for it. He said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Aunt, you don't whack Sid when he takes it." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, Sid don't torment a body the way you do. You'd be always into | 
 | that sugar if I warn't watching you." | 
 |  | 
 | Presently she stepped into the kitchen, and Sid, happy in his | 
 | immunity, reached for the sugar-bowl--a sort of glorying over Tom which | 
 | was wellnigh unbearable. But Sid's fingers slipped and the bowl dropped | 
 | and broke. Tom was in ecstasies. In such ecstasies that he even | 
 | controlled his tongue and was silent. He said to himself that he would | 
 | not speak a word, even when his aunt came in, but would sit perfectly | 
 | still till she asked who did the mischief; and then he would tell, and | 
 | there would be nothing so good in the world as to see that pet model | 
 | "catch it." He was so brimful of exultation that he could hardly hold | 
 | himself when the old lady came back and stood above the wreck | 
 | discharging lightnings of wrath from over her spectacles. He said to | 
 | himself, "Now it's coming!" And the next instant he was sprawling on | 
 | the floor! The potent palm was uplifted to strike again when Tom cried | 
 | out: | 
 |  | 
 | "Hold on, now, what 'er you belting ME for?--Sid broke it!" | 
 |  | 
 | Aunt Polly paused, perplexed, and Tom looked for healing pity. But | 
 | when she got her tongue again, she only said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Umf! Well, you didn't get a lick amiss, I reckon. You been into some | 
 | other audacious mischief when I wasn't around, like enough." | 
 |  | 
 | Then her conscience reproached her, and she yearned to say something | 
 | kind and loving; but she judged that this would be construed into a | 
 | confession that she had been in the wrong, and discipline forbade that. | 
 | So she kept silence, and went about her affairs with a troubled heart. | 
 | Tom sulked in a corner and exalted his woes. He knew that in her heart | 
 | his aunt was on her knees to him, and he was morosely gratified by the | 
 | consciousness of it. He would hang out no signals, he would take notice | 
 | of none. He knew that a yearning glance fell upon him, now and then, | 
 | through a film of tears, but he refused recognition of it. He pictured | 
 | himself lying sick unto death and his aunt bending over him beseeching | 
 | one little forgiving word, but he would turn his face to the wall, and | 
 | die with that word unsaid. Ah, how would she feel then? And he pictured | 
 | himself brought home from the river, dead, with his curls all wet, and | 
 | his sore heart at rest. How she would throw herself upon him, and how | 
 | her tears would fall like rain, and her lips pray God to give her back | 
 | her boy and she would never, never abuse him any more! But he would lie | 
 | there cold and white and make no sign--a poor little sufferer, whose | 
 | griefs were at an end. He so worked upon his feelings with the pathos | 
 | of these dreams, that he had to keep swallowing, he was so like to | 
 | choke; and his eyes swam in a blur of water, which overflowed when he | 
 | winked, and ran down and trickled from the end of his nose. And such a | 
 | luxury to him was this petting of his sorrows, that he could not bear | 
 | to have any worldly cheeriness or any grating delight intrude upon it; | 
 | it was too sacred for such contact; and so, presently, when his cousin | 
 | Mary danced in, all alive with the joy of seeing home again after an | 
 | age-long visit of one week to the country, he got up and moved in | 
 | clouds and darkness out at one door as she brought song and sunshine in | 
 | at the other. | 
 |  | 
 | He wandered far from the accustomed haunts of boys, and sought | 
 | desolate places that were in harmony with his spirit. A log raft in the | 
 | river invited him, and he seated himself on its outer edge and | 
 | contemplated the dreary vastness of the stream, wishing, the while, | 
 | that he could only be drowned, all at once and unconsciously, without | 
 | undergoing the uncomfortable routine devised by nature. Then he thought | 
 | of his flower. He got it out, rumpled and wilted, and it mightily | 
 | increased his dismal felicity. He wondered if she would pity him if she | 
 | knew? Would she cry, and wish that she had a right to put her arms | 
 | around his neck and comfort him? Or would she turn coldly away like all | 
 | the hollow world? This picture brought such an agony of pleasurable | 
 | suffering that he worked it over and over again in his mind and set it | 
 | up in new and varied lights, till he wore it threadbare. At last he | 
 | rose up sighing and departed in the darkness. | 
 |  | 
 | About half-past nine or ten o'clock he came along the deserted street | 
 | to where the Adored Unknown lived; he paused a moment; no sound fell | 
 | upon his listening ear; a candle was casting a dull glow upon the | 
 | curtain of a second-story window. Was the sacred presence there? He | 
 | climbed the fence, threaded his stealthy way through the plants, till | 
 | he stood under that window; he looked up at it long, and with emotion; | 
 | then he laid him down on the ground under it, disposing himself upon | 
 | his back, with his hands clasped upon his breast and holding his poor | 
 | wilted flower. And thus he would die--out in the cold world, with no | 
 | shelter over his homeless head, no friendly hand to wipe the | 
 | death-damps from his brow, no loving face to bend pityingly over him | 
 | when the great agony came. And thus SHE would see him when she looked | 
 | out upon the glad morning, and oh! would she drop one little tear upon | 
 | his poor, lifeless form, would she heave one little sigh to see a bright | 
 | young life so rudely blighted, so untimely cut down? | 
 |  | 
 | The window went up, a maid-servant's discordant voice profaned the | 
 | holy calm, and a deluge of water drenched the prone martyr's remains! | 
 |  | 
 | The strangling hero sprang up with a relieving snort. There was a whiz | 
 | as of a missile in the air, mingled with the murmur of a curse, a sound | 
 | as of shivering glass followed, and a small, vague form went over the | 
 | fence and shot away in the gloom. | 
 |  | 
 | Not long after, as Tom, all undressed for bed, was surveying his | 
 | drenched garments by the light of a tallow dip, Sid woke up; but if he | 
 | had any dim idea of making any "references to allusions," he thought | 
 | better of it and held his peace, for there was danger in Tom's eye. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom turned in without the added vexation of prayers, and Sid made | 
 | mental note of the omission. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER IV | 
 |  | 
 | THE sun rose upon a tranquil world, and beamed down upon the peaceful | 
 | village like a benediction. Breakfast over, Aunt Polly had family | 
 | worship: it began with a prayer built from the ground up of solid | 
 | courses of Scriptural quotations, welded together with a thin mortar of | 
 | originality; and from the summit of this she delivered a grim chapter | 
 | of the Mosaic Law, as from Sinai. | 
 |  | 
 | Then Tom girded up his loins, so to speak, and went to work to "get | 
 | his verses." Sid had learned his lesson days before. Tom bent all his | 
 | energies to the memorizing of five verses, and he chose part of the | 
 | Sermon on the Mount, because he could find no verses that were shorter. | 
 | At the end of half an hour Tom had a vague general idea of his lesson, | 
 | but no more, for his mind was traversing the whole field of human | 
 | thought, and his hands were busy with distracting recreations. Mary | 
 | took his book to hear him recite, and he tried to find his way through | 
 | the fog: | 
 |  | 
 | "Blessed are the--a--a--" | 
 |  | 
 | "Poor"-- | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes--poor; blessed are the poor--a--a--" | 
 |  | 
 | "In spirit--" | 
 |  | 
 | "In spirit; blessed are the poor in spirit, for they--they--" | 
 |  | 
 | "THEIRS--" | 
 |  | 
 | "For THEIRS. Blessed are the poor in spirit, for theirs is the kingdom | 
 | of heaven. Blessed are they that mourn, for they--they--" | 
 |  | 
 | "Sh--" | 
 |  | 
 | "For they--a--" | 
 |  | 
 | "S, H, A--" | 
 |  | 
 | "For they S, H--Oh, I don't know what it is!" | 
 |  | 
 | "SHALL!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, SHALL! for they shall--for they shall--a--a--shall mourn--a--a-- | 
 | blessed are they that shall--they that--a--they that shall mourn, for | 
 | they shall--a--shall WHAT? Why don't you tell me, Mary?--what do you | 
 | want to be so mean for?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, Tom, you poor thick-headed thing, I'm not teasing you. I wouldn't | 
 | do that. You must go and learn it again. Don't you be discouraged, Tom, | 
 | you'll manage it--and if you do, I'll give you something ever so nice. | 
 | There, now, that's a good boy." | 
 |  | 
 | "All right! What is it, Mary, tell me what it is." | 
 |  | 
 | "Never you mind, Tom. You know if I say it's nice, it is nice." | 
 |  | 
 | "You bet you that's so, Mary. All right, I'll tackle it again." | 
 |  | 
 | And he did "tackle it again"--and under the double pressure of | 
 | curiosity and prospective gain he did it with such spirit that he | 
 | accomplished a shining success. Mary gave him a brand-new "Barlow" | 
 | knife worth twelve and a half cents; and the convulsion of delight that | 
 | swept his system shook him to his foundations. True, the knife would | 
 | not cut anything, but it was a "sure-enough" Barlow, and there was | 
 | inconceivable grandeur in that--though where the Western boys ever got | 
 | the idea that such a weapon could possibly be counterfeited to its | 
 | injury is an imposing mystery and will always remain so, perhaps. Tom | 
 | contrived to scarify the cupboard with it, and was arranging to begin | 
 | on the bureau, when he was called off to dress for Sunday-school. | 
 |  | 
 | Mary gave him a tin basin of water and a piece of soap, and he went | 
 | outside the door and set the basin on a little bench there; then he | 
 | dipped the soap in the water and laid it down; turned up his sleeves; | 
 | poured out the water on the ground, gently, and then entered the | 
 | kitchen and began to wipe his face diligently on the towel behind the | 
 | door. But Mary removed the towel and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Now ain't you ashamed, Tom. You mustn't be so bad. Water won't hurt | 
 | you." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom was a trifle disconcerted. The basin was refilled, and this time | 
 | he stood over it a little while, gathering resolution; took in a big | 
 | breath and began. When he entered the kitchen presently, with both eyes | 
 | shut and groping for the towel with his hands, an honorable testimony | 
 | of suds and water was dripping from his face. But when he emerged from | 
 | the towel, he was not yet satisfactory, for the clean territory stopped | 
 | short at his chin and his jaws, like a mask; below and beyond this line | 
 | there was a dark expanse of unirrigated soil that spread downward in | 
 | front and backward around his neck. Mary took him in hand, and when she | 
 | was done with him he was a man and a brother, without distinction of | 
 | color, and his saturated hair was neatly brushed, and its short curls | 
 | wrought into a dainty and symmetrical general effect. [He privately | 
 | smoothed out the curls, with labor and difficulty, and plastered his | 
 | hair close down to his head; for he held curls to be effeminate, and | 
 | his own filled his life with bitterness.] Then Mary got out a suit of | 
 | his clothing that had been used only on Sundays during two years--they | 
 | were simply called his "other clothes"--and so by that we know the | 
 | size of his wardrobe. The girl "put him to rights" after he had dressed | 
 | himself; she buttoned his neat roundabout up to his chin, turned his | 
 | vast shirt collar down over his shoulders, brushed him off and crowned | 
 | him with his speckled straw hat. He now looked exceedingly improved and | 
 | uncomfortable. He was fully as uncomfortable as he looked; for there | 
 | was a restraint about whole clothes and cleanliness that galled him. He | 
 | hoped that Mary would forget his shoes, but the hope was blighted; she | 
 | coated them thoroughly with tallow, as was the custom, and brought them | 
 | out. He lost his temper and said he was always being made to do | 
 | everything he didn't want to do. But Mary said, persuasively: | 
 |  | 
 | "Please, Tom--that's a good boy." | 
 |  | 
 | So he got into the shoes snarling. Mary was soon ready, and the three | 
 | children set out for Sunday-school--a place that Tom hated with his | 
 | whole heart; but Sid and Mary were fond of it. | 
 |  | 
 | Sabbath-school hours were from nine to half-past ten; and then church | 
 | service. Two of the children always remained for the sermon | 
 | voluntarily, and the other always remained too--for stronger reasons. | 
 | The church's high-backed, uncushioned pews would seat about three | 
 | hundred persons; the edifice was but a small, plain affair, with a sort | 
 | of pine board tree-box on top of it for a steeple. At the door Tom | 
 | dropped back a step and accosted a Sunday-dressed comrade: | 
 |  | 
 | "Say, Billy, got a yaller ticket?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes." | 
 |  | 
 | "What'll you take for her?" | 
 |  | 
 | "What'll you give?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Piece of lickrish and a fish-hook." | 
 |  | 
 | "Less see 'em." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom exhibited. They were satisfactory, and the property changed hands. | 
 | Then Tom traded a couple of white alleys for three red tickets, and | 
 | some small trifle or other for a couple of blue ones. He waylaid other | 
 | boys as they came, and went on buying tickets of various colors ten or | 
 | fifteen minutes longer. He entered the church, now, with a swarm of | 
 | clean and noisy boys and girls, proceeded to his seat and started a | 
 | quarrel with the first boy that came handy. The teacher, a grave, | 
 | elderly man, interfered; then turned his back a moment and Tom pulled a | 
 | boy's hair in the next bench, and was absorbed in his book when the boy | 
 | turned around; stuck a pin in another boy, presently, in order to hear | 
 | him say "Ouch!" and got a new reprimand from his teacher. Tom's whole | 
 | class were of a pattern--restless, noisy, and troublesome. When they | 
 | came to recite their lessons, not one of them knew his verses | 
 | perfectly, but had to be prompted all along. However, they worried | 
 | through, and each got his reward--in small blue tickets, each with a | 
 | passage of Scripture on it; each blue ticket was pay for two verses of | 
 | the recitation. Ten blue tickets equalled a red one, and could be | 
 | exchanged for it; ten red tickets equalled a yellow one; for ten yellow | 
 | tickets the superintendent gave a very plainly bound Bible (worth forty | 
 | cents in those easy times) to the pupil. How many of my readers would | 
 | have the industry and application to memorize two thousand verses, even | 
 | for a Dore Bible? And yet Mary had acquired two Bibles in this way--it | 
 | was the patient work of two years--and a boy of German parentage had | 
 | won four or five. He once recited three thousand verses without | 
 | stopping; but the strain upon his mental faculties was too great, and | 
 | he was little better than an idiot from that day forth--a grievous | 
 | misfortune for the school, for on great occasions, before company, the | 
 | superintendent (as Tom expressed it) had always made this boy come out | 
 | and "spread himself." Only the older pupils managed to keep their | 
 | tickets and stick to their tedious work long enough to get a Bible, and | 
 | so the delivery of one of these prizes was a rare and noteworthy | 
 | circumstance; the successful pupil was so great and conspicuous for | 
 | that day that on the spot every scholar's heart was fired with a fresh | 
 | ambition that often lasted a couple of weeks. It is possible that Tom's | 
 | mental stomach had never really hungered for one of those prizes, but | 
 | unquestionably his entire being had for many a day longed for the glory | 
 | and the eclat that came with it. | 
 |  | 
 | In due course the superintendent stood up in front of the pulpit, with | 
 | a closed hymn-book in his hand and his forefinger inserted between its | 
 | leaves, and commanded attention. When a Sunday-school superintendent | 
 | makes his customary little speech, a hymn-book in the hand is as | 
 | necessary as is the inevitable sheet of music in the hand of a singer | 
 | who stands forward on the platform and sings a solo at a concert | 
 | --though why, is a mystery: for neither the hymn-book nor the sheet of | 
 | music is ever referred to by the sufferer. This superintendent was a | 
 | slim creature of thirty-five, with a sandy goatee and short sandy hair; | 
 | he wore a stiff standing-collar whose upper edge almost reached his | 
 | ears and whose sharp points curved forward abreast the corners of his | 
 | mouth--a fence that compelled a straight lookout ahead, and a turning | 
 | of the whole body when a side view was required; his chin was propped | 
 | on a spreading cravat which was as broad and as long as a bank-note, | 
 | and had fringed ends; his boot toes were turned sharply up, in the | 
 | fashion of the day, like sleigh-runners--an effect patiently and | 
 | laboriously produced by the young men by sitting with their toes | 
 | pressed against a wall for hours together. Mr. Walters was very earnest | 
 | of mien, and very sincere and honest at heart; and he held sacred | 
 | things and places in such reverence, and so separated them from worldly | 
 | matters, that unconsciously to himself his Sunday-school voice had | 
 | acquired a peculiar intonation which was wholly absent on week-days. He | 
 | began after this fashion: | 
 |  | 
 | "Now, children, I want you all to sit up just as straight and pretty | 
 | as you can and give me all your attention for a minute or two. There | 
 | --that is it. That is the way good little boys and girls should do. I see | 
 | one little girl who is looking out of the window--I am afraid she | 
 | thinks I am out there somewhere--perhaps up in one of the trees making | 
 | a speech to the little birds. [Applausive titter.] I want to tell you | 
 | how good it makes me feel to see so many bright, clean little faces | 
 | assembled in a place like this, learning to do right and be good." And | 
 | so forth and so on. It is not necessary to set down the rest of the | 
 | oration. It was of a pattern which does not vary, and so it is familiar | 
 | to us all. | 
 |  | 
 | The latter third of the speech was marred by the resumption of fights | 
 | and other recreations among certain of the bad boys, and by fidgetings | 
 | and whisperings that extended far and wide, washing even to the bases | 
 | of isolated and incorruptible rocks like Sid and Mary. But now every | 
 | sound ceased suddenly, with the subsidence of Mr. Walters' voice, and | 
 | the conclusion of the speech was received with a burst of silent | 
 | gratitude. | 
 |  | 
 | A good part of the whispering had been occasioned by an event which | 
 | was more or less rare--the entrance of visitors: lawyer Thatcher, | 
 | accompanied by a very feeble and aged man; a fine, portly, middle-aged | 
 | gentleman with iron-gray hair; and a dignified lady who was doubtless | 
 | the latter's wife. The lady was leading a child. Tom had been restless | 
 | and full of chafings and repinings; conscience-smitten, too--he could | 
 | not meet Amy Lawrence's eye, he could not brook her loving gaze. But | 
 | when he saw this small new-comer his soul was all ablaze with bliss in | 
 | a moment. The next moment he was "showing off" with all his might | 
 | --cuffing boys, pulling hair, making faces--in a word, using every art | 
 | that seemed likely to fascinate a girl and win her applause. His | 
 | exaltation had but one alloy--the memory of his humiliation in this | 
 | angel's garden--and that record in sand was fast washing out, under | 
 | the waves of happiness that were sweeping over it now. | 
 |  | 
 | The visitors were given the highest seat of honor, and as soon as Mr. | 
 | Walters' speech was finished, he introduced them to the school. The | 
 | middle-aged man turned out to be a prodigious personage--no less a one | 
 | than the county judge--altogether the most august creation these | 
 | children had ever looked upon--and they wondered what kind of material | 
 | he was made of--and they half wanted to hear him roar, and were half | 
 | afraid he might, too. He was from Constantinople, twelve miles away--so | 
 | he had travelled, and seen the world--these very eyes had looked upon | 
 | the county court-house--which was said to have a tin roof. The awe | 
 | which these reflections inspired was attested by the impressive silence | 
 | and the ranks of staring eyes. This was the great Judge Thatcher, | 
 | brother of their own lawyer. Jeff Thatcher immediately went forward, to | 
 | be familiar with the great man and be envied by the school. It would | 
 | have been music to his soul to hear the whisperings: | 
 |  | 
 | "Look at him, Jim! He's a going up there. Say--look! he's a going to | 
 | shake hands with him--he IS shaking hands with him! By jings, don't you | 
 | wish you was Jeff?" | 
 |  | 
 | Mr. Walters fell to "showing off," with all sorts of official | 
 | bustlings and activities, giving orders, delivering judgments, | 
 | discharging directions here, there, everywhere that he could find a | 
 | target. The librarian "showed off"--running hither and thither with his | 
 | arms full of books and making a deal of the splutter and fuss that | 
 | insect authority delights in. The young lady teachers "showed off" | 
 | --bending sweetly over pupils that were lately being boxed, lifting | 
 | pretty warning fingers at bad little boys and patting good ones | 
 | lovingly. The young gentlemen teachers "showed off" with small | 
 | scoldings and other little displays of authority and fine attention to | 
 | discipline--and most of the teachers, of both sexes, found business up | 
 | at the library, by the pulpit; and it was business that frequently had | 
 | to be done over again two or three times (with much seeming vexation). | 
 | The little girls "showed off" in various ways, and the little boys | 
 | "showed off" with such diligence that the air was thick with paper wads | 
 | and the murmur of scufflings. And above it all the great man sat and | 
 | beamed a majestic judicial smile upon all the house, and warmed himself | 
 | in the sun of his own grandeur--for he was "showing off," too. | 
 |  | 
 | There was only one thing wanting to make Mr. Walters' ecstasy | 
 | complete, and that was a chance to deliver a Bible-prize and exhibit a | 
 | prodigy. Several pupils had a few yellow tickets, but none had enough | 
 | --he had been around among the star pupils inquiring. He would have given | 
 | worlds, now, to have that German lad back again with a sound mind. | 
 |  | 
 | And now at this moment, when hope was dead, Tom Sawyer came forward | 
 | with nine yellow tickets, nine red tickets, and ten blue ones, and | 
 | demanded a Bible. This was a thunderbolt out of a clear sky. Walters | 
 | was not expecting an application from this source for the next ten | 
 | years. But there was no getting around it--here were the certified | 
 | checks, and they were good for their face. Tom was therefore elevated | 
 | to a place with the Judge and the other elect, and the great news was | 
 | announced from headquarters. It was the most stunning surprise of the | 
 | decade, and so profound was the sensation that it lifted the new hero | 
 | up to the judicial one's altitude, and the school had two marvels to | 
 | gaze upon in place of one. The boys were all eaten up with envy--but | 
 | those that suffered the bitterest pangs were those who perceived too | 
 | late that they themselves had contributed to this hated splendor by | 
 | trading tickets to Tom for the wealth he had amassed in selling | 
 | whitewashing privileges. These despised themselves, as being the dupes | 
 | of a wily fraud, a guileful snake in the grass. | 
 |  | 
 | The prize was delivered to Tom with as much effusion as the | 
 | superintendent could pump up under the circumstances; but it lacked | 
 | somewhat of the true gush, for the poor fellow's instinct taught him | 
 | that there was a mystery here that could not well bear the light, | 
 | perhaps; it was simply preposterous that this boy had warehoused two | 
 | thousand sheaves of Scriptural wisdom on his premises--a dozen would | 
 | strain his capacity, without a doubt. | 
 |  | 
 | Amy Lawrence was proud and glad, and she tried to make Tom see it in | 
 | her face--but he wouldn't look. She wondered; then she was just a grain | 
 | troubled; next a dim suspicion came and went--came again; she watched; | 
 | a furtive glance told her worlds--and then her heart broke, and she was | 
 | jealous, and angry, and the tears came and she hated everybody. Tom | 
 | most of all (she thought). | 
 |  | 
 | Tom was introduced to the Judge; but his tongue was tied, his breath | 
 | would hardly come, his heart quaked--partly because of the awful | 
 | greatness of the man, but mainly because he was her parent. He would | 
 | have liked to fall down and worship him, if it were in the dark. The | 
 | Judge put his hand on Tom's head and called him a fine little man, and | 
 | asked him what his name was. The boy stammered, gasped, and got it out: | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, no, not Tom--it is--" | 
 |  | 
 | "Thomas." | 
 |  | 
 | "Ah, that's it. I thought there was more to it, maybe. That's very | 
 | well. But you've another one I daresay, and you'll tell it to me, won't | 
 | you?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Tell the gentleman your other name, Thomas," said Walters, "and say | 
 | sir. You mustn't forget your manners." | 
 |  | 
 | "Thomas Sawyer--sir." | 
 |  | 
 | "That's it! That's a good boy. Fine boy. Fine, manly little fellow. | 
 | Two thousand verses is a great many--very, very great many. And you | 
 | never can be sorry for the trouble you took to learn them; for | 
 | knowledge is worth more than anything there is in the world; it's what | 
 | makes great men and good men; you'll be a great man and a good man | 
 | yourself, some day, Thomas, and then you'll look back and say, It's all | 
 | owing to the precious Sunday-school privileges of my boyhood--it's all | 
 | owing to my dear teachers that taught me to learn--it's all owing to | 
 | the good superintendent, who encouraged me, and watched over me, and | 
 | gave me a beautiful Bible--a splendid elegant Bible--to keep and have | 
 | it all for my own, always--it's all owing to right bringing up! That is | 
 | what you will say, Thomas--and you wouldn't take any money for those | 
 | two thousand verses--no indeed you wouldn't. And now you wouldn't mind | 
 | telling me and this lady some of the things you've learned--no, I know | 
 | you wouldn't--for we are proud of little boys that learn. Now, no | 
 | doubt you know the names of all the twelve disciples. Won't you tell us | 
 | the names of the first two that were appointed?" | 
 |  | 
 | Tom was tugging at a button-hole and looking sheepish. He blushed, | 
 | now, and his eyes fell. Mr. Walters' heart sank within him. He said to | 
 | himself, it is not possible that the boy can answer the simplest | 
 | question--why DID the Judge ask him? Yet he felt obliged to speak up | 
 | and say: | 
 |  | 
 | "Answer the gentleman, Thomas--don't be afraid." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom still hung fire. | 
 |  | 
 | "Now I know you'll tell me," said the lady. "The names of the first | 
 | two disciples were--" | 
 |  | 
 | "DAVID AND GOLIAH!" | 
 |  | 
 | Let us draw the curtain of charity over the rest of the scene. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER V | 
 |  | 
 | ABOUT half-past ten the cracked bell of the small church began to | 
 | ring, and presently the people began to gather for the morning sermon. | 
 | The Sunday-school children distributed themselves about the house and | 
 | occupied pews with their parents, so as to be under supervision. Aunt | 
 | Polly came, and Tom and Sid and Mary sat with her--Tom being placed | 
 | next the aisle, in order that he might be as far away from the open | 
 | window and the seductive outside summer scenes as possible. The crowd | 
 | filed up the aisles: the aged and needy postmaster, who had seen better | 
 | days; the mayor and his wife--for they had a mayor there, among other | 
 | unnecessaries; the justice of the peace; the widow Douglass, fair, | 
 | smart, and forty, a generous, good-hearted soul and well-to-do, her | 
 | hill mansion the only palace in the town, and the most hospitable and | 
 | much the most lavish in the matter of festivities that St. Petersburg | 
 | could boast; the bent and venerable Major and Mrs. Ward; lawyer | 
 | Riverson, the new notable from a distance; next the belle of the | 
 | village, followed by a troop of lawn-clad and ribbon-decked young | 
 | heart-breakers; then all the young clerks in town in a body--for they | 
 | had stood in the vestibule sucking their cane-heads, a circling wall of | 
 | oiled and simpering admirers, till the last girl had run their gantlet; | 
 | and last of all came the Model Boy, Willie Mufferson, taking as heedful | 
 | care of his mother as if she were cut glass. He always brought his | 
 | mother to church, and was the pride of all the matrons. The boys all | 
 | hated him, he was so good. And besides, he had been "thrown up to them" | 
 | so much. His white handkerchief was hanging out of his pocket behind, as | 
 | usual on Sundays--accidentally. Tom had no handkerchief, and he looked | 
 | upon boys who had as snobs. | 
 |  | 
 | The congregation being fully assembled, now, the bell rang once more, | 
 | to warn laggards and stragglers, and then a solemn hush fell upon the | 
 | church which was only broken by the tittering and whispering of the | 
 | choir in the gallery. The choir always tittered and whispered all | 
 | through service. There was once a church choir that was not ill-bred, | 
 | but I have forgotten where it was, now. It was a great many years ago, | 
 | and I can scarcely remember anything about it, but I think it was in | 
 | some foreign country. | 
 |  | 
 | The minister gave out the hymn, and read it through with a relish, in | 
 | a peculiar style which was much admired in that part of the country. | 
 | His voice began on a medium key and climbed steadily up till it reached | 
 | a certain point, where it bore with strong emphasis upon the topmost | 
 | word and then plunged down as if from a spring-board: | 
 |  | 
 |   Shall I be car-ri-ed toe the skies, on flow'ry BEDS of ease, | 
 |  | 
 |   Whilst others fight to win the prize, and sail thro' BLOODY seas? | 
 |  | 
 | He was regarded as a wonderful reader. At church "sociables" he was | 
 | always called upon to read poetry; and when he was through, the ladies | 
 | would lift up their hands and let them fall helplessly in their laps, | 
 | and "wall" their eyes, and shake their heads, as much as to say, "Words | 
 | cannot express it; it is too beautiful, TOO beautiful for this mortal | 
 | earth." | 
 |  | 
 | After the hymn had been sung, the Rev. Mr. Sprague turned himself into | 
 | a bulletin-board, and read off "notices" of meetings and societies and | 
 | things till it seemed that the list would stretch out to the crack of | 
 | doom--a queer custom which is still kept up in America, even in cities, | 
 | away here in this age of abundant newspapers. Often, the less there is | 
 | to justify a traditional custom, the harder it is to get rid of it. | 
 |  | 
 | And now the minister prayed. A good, generous prayer it was, and went | 
 | into details: it pleaded for the church, and the little children of the | 
 | church; for the other churches of the village; for the village itself; | 
 | for the county; for the State; for the State officers; for the United | 
 | States; for the churches of the United States; for Congress; for the | 
 | President; for the officers of the Government; for poor sailors, tossed | 
 | by stormy seas; for the oppressed millions groaning under the heel of | 
 | European monarchies and Oriental despotisms; for such as have the light | 
 | and the good tidings, and yet have not eyes to see nor ears to hear | 
 | withal; for the heathen in the far islands of the sea; and closed with | 
 | a supplication that the words he was about to speak might find grace | 
 | and favor, and be as seed sown in fertile ground, yielding in time a | 
 | grateful harvest of good. Amen. | 
 |  | 
 | There was a rustling of dresses, and the standing congregation sat | 
 | down. The boy whose history this book relates did not enjoy the prayer, | 
 | he only endured it--if he even did that much. He was restive all | 
 | through it; he kept tally of the details of the prayer, unconsciously | 
 | --for he was not listening, but he knew the ground of old, and the | 
 | clergyman's regular route over it--and when a little trifle of new | 
 | matter was interlarded, his ear detected it and his whole nature | 
 | resented it; he considered additions unfair, and scoundrelly. In the | 
 | midst of the prayer a fly had lit on the back of the pew in front of | 
 | him and tortured his spirit by calmly rubbing its hands together, | 
 | embracing its head with its arms, and polishing it so vigorously that | 
 | it seemed to almost part company with the body, and the slender thread | 
 | of a neck was exposed to view; scraping its wings with its hind legs | 
 | and smoothing them to its body as if they had been coat-tails; going | 
 | through its whole toilet as tranquilly as if it knew it was perfectly | 
 | safe. As indeed it was; for as sorely as Tom's hands itched to grab for | 
 | it they did not dare--he believed his soul would be instantly destroyed | 
 | if he did such a thing while the prayer was going on. But with the | 
 | closing sentence his hand began to curve and steal forward; and the | 
 | instant the "Amen" was out the fly was a prisoner of war. His aunt | 
 | detected the act and made him let it go. | 
 |  | 
 | The minister gave out his text and droned along monotonously through | 
 | an argument that was so prosy that many a head by and by began to nod | 
 | --and yet it was an argument that dealt in limitless fire and brimstone | 
 | and thinned the predestined elect down to a company so small as to be | 
 | hardly worth the saving. Tom counted the pages of the sermon; after | 
 | church he always knew how many pages there had been, but he seldom knew | 
 | anything else about the discourse. However, this time he was really | 
 | interested for a little while. The minister made a grand and moving | 
 | picture of the assembling together of the world's hosts at the | 
 | millennium when the lion and the lamb should lie down together and a | 
 | little child should lead them. But the pathos, the lesson, the moral of | 
 | the great spectacle were lost upon the boy; he only thought of the | 
 | conspicuousness of the principal character before the on-looking | 
 | nations; his face lit with the thought, and he said to himself that he | 
 | wished he could be that child, if it was a tame lion. | 
 |  | 
 | Now he lapsed into suffering again, as the dry argument was resumed. | 
 | Presently he bethought him of a treasure he had and got it out. It was | 
 | a large black beetle with formidable jaws--a "pinchbug," he called it. | 
 | It was in a percussion-cap box. The first thing the beetle did was to | 
 | take him by the finger. A natural fillip followed, the beetle went | 
 | floundering into the aisle and lit on its back, and the hurt finger | 
 | went into the boy's mouth. The beetle lay there working its helpless | 
 | legs, unable to turn over. Tom eyed it, and longed for it; but it was | 
 | safe out of his reach. Other people uninterested in the sermon found | 
 | relief in the beetle, and they eyed it too. Presently a vagrant poodle | 
 | dog came idling along, sad at heart, lazy with the summer softness and | 
 | the quiet, weary of captivity, sighing for change. He spied the beetle; | 
 | the drooping tail lifted and wagged. He surveyed the prize; walked | 
 | around it; smelt at it from a safe distance; walked around it again; | 
 | grew bolder, and took a closer smell; then lifted his lip and made a | 
 | gingerly snatch at it, just missing it; made another, and another; | 
 | began to enjoy the diversion; subsided to his stomach with the beetle | 
 | between his paws, and continued his experiments; grew weary at last, | 
 | and then indifferent and absent-minded. His head nodded, and little by | 
 | little his chin descended and touched the enemy, who seized it. There | 
 | was a sharp yelp, a flirt of the poodle's head, and the beetle fell a | 
 | couple of yards away, and lit on its back once more. The neighboring | 
 | spectators shook with a gentle inward joy, several faces went behind | 
 | fans and handkerchiefs, and Tom was entirely happy. The dog looked | 
 | foolish, and probably felt so; but there was resentment in his heart, | 
 | too, and a craving for revenge. So he went to the beetle and began a | 
 | wary attack on it again; jumping at it from every point of a circle, | 
 | lighting with his fore-paws within an inch of the creature, making even | 
 | closer snatches at it with his teeth, and jerking his head till his | 
 | ears flapped again. But he grew tired once more, after a while; tried | 
 | to amuse himself with a fly but found no relief; followed an ant | 
 | around, with his nose close to the floor, and quickly wearied of that; | 
 | yawned, sighed, forgot the beetle entirely, and sat down on it. Then | 
 | there was a wild yelp of agony and the poodle went sailing up the | 
 | aisle; the yelps continued, and so did the dog; he crossed the house in | 
 | front of the altar; he flew down the other aisle; he crossed before the | 
 | doors; he clamored up the home-stretch; his anguish grew with his | 
 | progress, till presently he was but a woolly comet moving in its orbit | 
 | with the gleam and the speed of light. At last the frantic sufferer | 
 | sheered from its course, and sprang into its master's lap; he flung it | 
 | out of the window, and the voice of distress quickly thinned away and | 
 | died in the distance. | 
 |  | 
 | By this time the whole church was red-faced and suffocating with | 
 | suppressed laughter, and the sermon had come to a dead standstill. The | 
 | discourse was resumed presently, but it went lame and halting, all | 
 | possibility of impressiveness being at an end; for even the gravest | 
 | sentiments were constantly being received with a smothered burst of | 
 | unholy mirth, under cover of some remote pew-back, as if the poor | 
 | parson had said a rarely facetious thing. It was a genuine relief to | 
 | the whole congregation when the ordeal was over and the benediction | 
 | pronounced. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom Sawyer went home quite cheerful, thinking to himself that there | 
 | was some satisfaction about divine service when there was a bit of | 
 | variety in it. He had but one marring thought; he was willing that the | 
 | dog should play with his pinchbug, but he did not think it was upright | 
 | in him to carry it off. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER VI | 
 |  | 
 | MONDAY morning found Tom Sawyer miserable. Monday morning always found | 
 | him so--because it began another week's slow suffering in school. He | 
 | generally began that day with wishing he had had no intervening | 
 | holiday, it made the going into captivity and fetters again so much | 
 | more odious. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom lay thinking. Presently it occurred to him that he wished he was | 
 | sick; then he could stay home from school. Here was a vague | 
 | possibility. He canvassed his system. No ailment was found, and he | 
 | investigated again. This time he thought he could detect colicky | 
 | symptoms, and he began to encourage them with considerable hope. But | 
 | they soon grew feeble, and presently died wholly away. He reflected | 
 | further. Suddenly he discovered something. One of his upper front teeth | 
 | was loose. This was lucky; he was about to begin to groan, as a | 
 | "starter," as he called it, when it occurred to him that if he came | 
 | into court with that argument, his aunt would pull it out, and that | 
 | would hurt. So he thought he would hold the tooth in reserve for the | 
 | present, and seek further. Nothing offered for some little time, and | 
 | then he remembered hearing the doctor tell about a certain thing that | 
 | laid up a patient for two or three weeks and threatened to make him | 
 | lose a finger. So the boy eagerly drew his sore toe from under the | 
 | sheet and held it up for inspection. But now he did not know the | 
 | necessary symptoms. However, it seemed well worth while to chance it, | 
 | so he fell to groaning with considerable spirit. | 
 |  | 
 | But Sid slept on unconscious. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom groaned louder, and fancied that he began to feel pain in the toe. | 
 |  | 
 | No result from Sid. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom was panting with his exertions by this time. He took a rest and | 
 | then swelled himself up and fetched a succession of admirable groans. | 
 |  | 
 | Sid snored on. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom was aggravated. He said, "Sid, Sid!" and shook him. This course | 
 | worked well, and Tom began to groan again. Sid yawned, stretched, then | 
 | brought himself up on his elbow with a snort, and began to stare at | 
 | Tom. Tom went on groaning. Sid said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom! Say, Tom!" [No response.] "Here, Tom! TOM! What is the matter, | 
 | Tom?" And he shook him and looked in his face anxiously. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom moaned out: | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, don't, Sid. Don't joggle me." | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, what's the matter, Tom? I must call auntie." | 
 |  | 
 | "No--never mind. It'll be over by and by, maybe. Don't call anybody." | 
 |  | 
 | "But I must! DON'T groan so, Tom, it's awful. How long you been this | 
 | way?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Hours. Ouch! Oh, don't stir so, Sid, you'll kill me." | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, why didn't you wake me sooner? Oh, Tom, DON'T! It makes my | 
 | flesh crawl to hear you. Tom, what is the matter?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I forgive you everything, Sid. [Groan.] Everything you've ever done | 
 | to me. When I'm gone--" | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, Tom, you ain't dying, are you? Don't, Tom--oh, don't. Maybe--" | 
 |  | 
 | "I forgive everybody, Sid. [Groan.] Tell 'em so, Sid. And Sid, you | 
 | give my window-sash and my cat with one eye to that new girl that's | 
 | come to town, and tell her--" | 
 |  | 
 | But Sid had snatched his clothes and gone. Tom was suffering in | 
 | reality, now, so handsomely was his imagination working, and so his | 
 | groans had gathered quite a genuine tone. | 
 |  | 
 | Sid flew down-stairs and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, Aunt Polly, come! Tom's dying!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Dying!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes'm. Don't wait--come quick!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Rubbage! I don't believe it!" | 
 |  | 
 | But she fled up-stairs, nevertheless, with Sid and Mary at her heels. | 
 | And her face grew white, too, and her lip trembled. When she reached | 
 | the bedside she gasped out: | 
 |  | 
 | "You, Tom! Tom, what's the matter with you?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, auntie, I'm--" | 
 |  | 
 | "What's the matter with you--what is the matter with you, child?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, auntie, my sore toe's mortified!" | 
 |  | 
 | The old lady sank down into a chair and laughed a little, then cried a | 
 | little, then did both together. This restored her and she said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, what a turn you did give me. Now you shut up that nonsense and | 
 | climb out of this." | 
 |  | 
 | The groans ceased and the pain vanished from the toe. The boy felt a | 
 | little foolish, and he said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Aunt Polly, it SEEMED mortified, and it hurt so I never minded my | 
 | tooth at all." | 
 |  | 
 | "Your tooth, indeed! What's the matter with your tooth?" | 
 |  | 
 | "One of them's loose, and it aches perfectly awful." | 
 |  | 
 | "There, there, now, don't begin that groaning again. Open your mouth. | 
 | Well--your tooth IS loose, but you're not going to die about that. | 
 | Mary, get me a silk thread, and a chunk of fire out of the kitchen." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, please, auntie, don't pull it out. It don't hurt any more. I wish | 
 | I may never stir if it does. Please don't, auntie. I don't want to stay | 
 | home from school." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, you don't, don't you? So all this row was because you thought | 
 | you'd get to stay home from school and go a-fishing? Tom, Tom, I love | 
 | you so, and you seem to try every way you can to break my old heart | 
 | with your outrageousness." By this time the dental instruments were | 
 | ready. The old lady made one end of the silk thread fast to Tom's tooth | 
 | with a loop and tied the other to the bedpost. Then she seized the | 
 | chunk of fire and suddenly thrust it almost into the boy's face. The | 
 | tooth hung dangling by the bedpost, now. | 
 |  | 
 | But all trials bring their compensations. As Tom wended to school | 
 | after breakfast, he was the envy of every boy he met because the gap in | 
 | his upper row of teeth enabled him to expectorate in a new and | 
 | admirable way. He gathered quite a following of lads interested in the | 
 | exhibition; and one that had cut his finger and had been a centre of | 
 | fascination and homage up to this time, now found himself suddenly | 
 | without an adherent, and shorn of his glory. His heart was heavy, and | 
 | he said with a disdain which he did not feel that it wasn't anything to | 
 | spit like Tom Sawyer; but another boy said, "Sour grapes!" and he | 
 | wandered away a dismantled hero. | 
 |  | 
 | Shortly Tom came upon the juvenile pariah of the village, Huckleberry | 
 | Finn, son of the town drunkard. Huckleberry was cordially hated and | 
 | dreaded by all the mothers of the town, because he was idle and lawless | 
 | and vulgar and bad--and because all their children admired him so, and | 
 | delighted in his forbidden society, and wished they dared to be like | 
 | him. Tom was like the rest of the respectable boys, in that he envied | 
 | Huckleberry his gaudy outcast condition, and was under strict orders | 
 | not to play with him. So he played with him every time he got a chance. | 
 | Huckleberry was always dressed in the cast-off clothes of full-grown | 
 | men, and they were in perennial bloom and fluttering with rags. His hat | 
 | was a vast ruin with a wide crescent lopped out of its brim; his coat, | 
 | when he wore one, hung nearly to his heels and had the rearward buttons | 
 | far down the back; but one suspender supported his trousers; the seat | 
 | of the trousers bagged low and contained nothing, the fringed legs | 
 | dragged in the dirt when not rolled up. | 
 |  | 
 | Huckleberry came and went, at his own free will. He slept on doorsteps | 
 | in fine weather and in empty hogsheads in wet; he did not have to go to | 
 | school or to church, or call any being master or obey anybody; he could | 
 | go fishing or swimming when and where he chose, and stay as long as it | 
 | suited him; nobody forbade him to fight; he could sit up as late as he | 
 | pleased; he was always the first boy that went barefoot in the spring | 
 | and the last to resume leather in the fall; he never had to wash, nor | 
 | put on clean clothes; he could swear wonderfully. In a word, everything | 
 | that goes to make life precious that boy had. So thought every | 
 | harassed, hampered, respectable boy in St. Petersburg. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom hailed the romantic outcast: | 
 |  | 
 | "Hello, Huckleberry!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Hello yourself, and see how you like it." | 
 |  | 
 | "What's that you got?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Dead cat." | 
 |  | 
 | "Lemme see him, Huck. My, he's pretty stiff. Where'd you get him?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Bought him off'n a boy." | 
 |  | 
 | "What did you give?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I give a blue ticket and a bladder that I got at the slaughter-house." | 
 |  | 
 | "Where'd you get the blue ticket?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Bought it off'n Ben Rogers two weeks ago for a hoop-stick." | 
 |  | 
 | "Say--what is dead cats good for, Huck?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Good for? Cure warts with." | 
 |  | 
 | "No! Is that so? I know something that's better." | 
 |  | 
 | "I bet you don't. What is it?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, spunk-water." | 
 |  | 
 | "Spunk-water! I wouldn't give a dern for spunk-water." | 
 |  | 
 | "You wouldn't, wouldn't you? D'you ever try it?" | 
 |  | 
 | "No, I hain't. But Bob Tanner did." | 
 |  | 
 | "Who told you so!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, he told Jeff Thatcher, and Jeff told Johnny Baker, and Johnny | 
 | told Jim Hollis, and Jim told Ben Rogers, and Ben told a nigger, and | 
 | the nigger told me. There now!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, what of it? They'll all lie. Leastways all but the nigger. I | 
 | don't know HIM. But I never see a nigger that WOULDN'T lie. Shucks! Now | 
 | you tell me how Bob Tanner done it, Huck." | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, he took and dipped his hand in a rotten stump where the | 
 | rain-water was." | 
 |  | 
 | "In the daytime?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Certainly." | 
 |  | 
 | "With his face to the stump?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes. Least I reckon so." | 
 |  | 
 | "Did he say anything?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I don't reckon he did. I don't know." | 
 |  | 
 | "Aha! Talk about trying to cure warts with spunk-water such a blame | 
 | fool way as that! Why, that ain't a-going to do any good. You got to go | 
 | all by yourself, to the middle of the woods, where you know there's a | 
 | spunk-water stump, and just as it's midnight you back up against the | 
 | stump and jam your hand in and say: | 
 |  | 
 |   'Barley-corn, barley-corn, injun-meal shorts, | 
 |    Spunk-water, spunk-water, swaller these warts,' | 
 |  | 
 | and then walk away quick, eleven steps, with your eyes shut, and then | 
 | turn around three times and walk home without speaking to anybody. | 
 | Because if you speak the charm's busted." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, that sounds like a good way; but that ain't the way Bob Tanner | 
 | done." | 
 |  | 
 | "No, sir, you can bet he didn't, becuz he's the wartiest boy in this | 
 | town; and he wouldn't have a wart on him if he'd knowed how to work | 
 | spunk-water. I've took off thousands of warts off of my hands that way, | 
 | Huck. I play with frogs so much that I've always got considerable many | 
 | warts. Sometimes I take 'em off with a bean." | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, bean's good. I've done that." | 
 |  | 
 | "Have you? What's your way?" | 
 |  | 
 | "You take and split the bean, and cut the wart so as to get some | 
 | blood, and then you put the blood on one piece of the bean and take and | 
 | dig a hole and bury it 'bout midnight at the crossroads in the dark of | 
 | the moon, and then you burn up the rest of the bean. You see that piece | 
 | that's got the blood on it will keep drawing and drawing, trying to | 
 | fetch the other piece to it, and so that helps the blood to draw the | 
 | wart, and pretty soon off she comes." | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, that's it, Huck--that's it; though when you're burying it if you | 
 | say 'Down bean; off wart; come no more to bother me!' it's better. | 
 | That's the way Joe Harper does, and he's been nearly to Coonville and | 
 | most everywheres. But say--how do you cure 'em with dead cats?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, you take your cat and go and get in the graveyard 'long about | 
 | midnight when somebody that was wicked has been buried; and when it's | 
 | midnight a devil will come, or maybe two or three, but you can't see | 
 | 'em, you can only hear something like the wind, or maybe hear 'em talk; | 
 | and when they're taking that feller away, you heave your cat after 'em | 
 | and say, 'Devil follow corpse, cat follow devil, warts follow cat, I'm | 
 | done with ye!' That'll fetch ANY wart." | 
 |  | 
 | "Sounds right. D'you ever try it, Huck?" | 
 |  | 
 | "No, but old Mother Hopkins told me." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I reckon it's so, then. Becuz they say she's a witch." | 
 |  | 
 | "Say! Why, Tom, I KNOW she is. She witched pap. Pap says so his own | 
 | self. He come along one day, and he see she was a-witching him, so he | 
 | took up a rock, and if she hadn't dodged, he'd a got her. Well, that | 
 | very night he rolled off'n a shed wher' he was a layin drunk, and broke | 
 | his arm." | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, that's awful. How did he know she was a-witching him?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Lord, pap can tell, easy. Pap says when they keep looking at you | 
 | right stiddy, they're a-witching you. Specially if they mumble. Becuz | 
 | when they mumble they're saying the Lord's Prayer backards." | 
 |  | 
 | "Say, Hucky, when you going to try the cat?" | 
 |  | 
 | "To-night. I reckon they'll come after old Hoss Williams to-night." | 
 |  | 
 | "But they buried him Saturday. Didn't they get him Saturday night?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, how you talk! How could their charms work till midnight?--and | 
 | THEN it's Sunday. Devils don't slosh around much of a Sunday, I don't | 
 | reckon." | 
 |  | 
 | "I never thought of that. That's so. Lemme go with you?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Of course--if you ain't afeard." | 
 |  | 
 | "Afeard! 'Tain't likely. Will you meow?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes--and you meow back, if you get a chance. Last time, you kep' me | 
 | a-meowing around till old Hays went to throwing rocks at me and says | 
 | 'Dern that cat!' and so I hove a brick through his window--but don't | 
 | you tell." | 
 |  | 
 | "I won't. I couldn't meow that night, becuz auntie was watching me, | 
 | but I'll meow this time. Say--what's that?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Nothing but a tick." | 
 |  | 
 | "Where'd you get him?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Out in the woods." | 
 |  | 
 | "What'll you take for him?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I don't know. I don't want to sell him." | 
 |  | 
 | "All right. It's a mighty small tick, anyway." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, anybody can run a tick down that don't belong to them. I'm | 
 | satisfied with it. It's a good enough tick for me." | 
 |  | 
 | "Sho, there's ticks a plenty. I could have a thousand of 'em if I | 
 | wanted to." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, why don't you? Becuz you know mighty well you can't. This is a | 
 | pretty early tick, I reckon. It's the first one I've seen this year." | 
 |  | 
 | "Say, Huck--I'll give you my tooth for him." | 
 |  | 
 | "Less see it." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom got out a bit of paper and carefully unrolled it. Huckleberry | 
 | viewed it wistfully. The temptation was very strong. At last he said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Is it genuwyne?" | 
 |  | 
 | Tom lifted his lip and showed the vacancy. | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, all right," said Huckleberry, "it's a trade." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom enclosed the tick in the percussion-cap box that had lately been | 
 | the pinchbug's prison, and the boys separated, each feeling wealthier | 
 | than before. | 
 |  | 
 | When Tom reached the little isolated frame schoolhouse, he strode in | 
 | briskly, with the manner of one who had come with all honest speed. | 
 | He hung his hat on a peg and flung himself into his seat with | 
 | business-like alacrity. The master, throned on high in his great | 
 | splint-bottom arm-chair, was dozing, lulled by the drowsy hum of study. | 
 | The interruption roused him. | 
 |  | 
 | "Thomas Sawyer!" | 
 |  | 
 | Tom knew that when his name was pronounced in full, it meant trouble. | 
 |  | 
 | "Sir!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Come up here. Now, sir, why are you late again, as usual?" | 
 |  | 
 | Tom was about to take refuge in a lie, when he saw two long tails of | 
 | yellow hair hanging down a back that he recognized by the electric | 
 | sympathy of love; and by that form was THE ONLY VACANT PLACE on the | 
 | girls' side of the schoolhouse. He instantly said: | 
 |  | 
 | "I STOPPED TO TALK WITH HUCKLEBERRY FINN!" | 
 |  | 
 | The master's pulse stood still, and he stared helplessly. The buzz of | 
 | study ceased. The pupils wondered if this foolhardy boy had lost his | 
 | mind. The master said: | 
 |  | 
 | "You--you did what?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Stopped to talk with Huckleberry Finn." | 
 |  | 
 | There was no mistaking the words. | 
 |  | 
 | "Thomas Sawyer, this is the most astounding confession I have ever | 
 | listened to. No mere ferule will answer for this offence. Take off your | 
 | jacket." | 
 |  | 
 | The master's arm performed until it was tired and the stock of | 
 | switches notably diminished. Then the order followed: | 
 |  | 
 | "Now, sir, go and sit with the girls! And let this be a warning to you." | 
 |  | 
 | The titter that rippled around the room appeared to abash the boy, but | 
 | in reality that result was caused rather more by his worshipful awe of | 
 | his unknown idol and the dread pleasure that lay in his high good | 
 | fortune. He sat down upon the end of the pine bench and the girl | 
 | hitched herself away from him with a toss of her head. Nudges and winks | 
 | and whispers traversed the room, but Tom sat still, with his arms upon | 
 | the long, low desk before him, and seemed to study his book. | 
 |  | 
 | By and by attention ceased from him, and the accustomed school murmur | 
 | rose upon the dull air once more. Presently the boy began to steal | 
 | furtive glances at the girl. She observed it, "made a mouth" at him and | 
 | gave him the back of her head for the space of a minute. When she | 
 | cautiously faced around again, a peach lay before her. She thrust it | 
 | away. Tom gently put it back. She thrust it away again, but with less | 
 | animosity. Tom patiently returned it to its place. Then she let it | 
 | remain. Tom scrawled on his slate, "Please take it--I got more." The | 
 | girl glanced at the words, but made no sign. Now the boy began to draw | 
 | something on the slate, hiding his work with his left hand. For a time | 
 | the girl refused to notice; but her human curiosity presently began to | 
 | manifest itself by hardly perceptible signs. The boy worked on, | 
 | apparently unconscious. The girl made a sort of noncommittal attempt to | 
 | see, but the boy did not betray that he was aware of it. At last she | 
 | gave in and hesitatingly whispered: | 
 |  | 
 | "Let me see it." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom partly uncovered a dismal caricature of a house with two gable | 
 | ends to it and a corkscrew of smoke issuing from the chimney. Then the | 
 | girl's interest began to fasten itself upon the work and she forgot | 
 | everything else. When it was finished, she gazed a moment, then | 
 | whispered: | 
 |  | 
 | "It's nice--make a man." | 
 |  | 
 | The artist erected a man in the front yard, that resembled a derrick. | 
 | He could have stepped over the house; but the girl was not | 
 | hypercritical; she was satisfied with the monster, and whispered: | 
 |  | 
 | "It's a beautiful man--now make me coming along." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom drew an hour-glass with a full moon and straw limbs to it and | 
 | armed the spreading fingers with a portentous fan. The girl said: | 
 |  | 
 | "It's ever so nice--I wish I could draw." | 
 |  | 
 | "It's easy," whispered Tom, "I'll learn you." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, will you? When?" | 
 |  | 
 | "At noon. Do you go home to dinner?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I'll stay if you will." | 
 |  | 
 | "Good--that's a whack. What's your name?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Becky Thatcher. What's yours? Oh, I know. It's Thomas Sawyer." | 
 |  | 
 | "That's the name they lick me by. I'm Tom when I'm good. You call me | 
 | Tom, will you?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes." | 
 |  | 
 | Now Tom began to scrawl something on the slate, hiding the words from | 
 | the girl. But she was not backward this time. She begged to see. Tom | 
 | said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, it ain't anything." | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes it is." | 
 |  | 
 | "No it ain't. You don't want to see." | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes I do, indeed I do. Please let me." | 
 |  | 
 | "You'll tell." | 
 |  | 
 | "No I won't--deed and deed and double deed won't." | 
 |  | 
 | "You won't tell anybody at all? Ever, as long as you live?" | 
 |  | 
 | "No, I won't ever tell ANYbody. Now let me." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, YOU don't want to see!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Now that you treat me so, I WILL see." And she put her small hand | 
 | upon his and a little scuffle ensued, Tom pretending to resist in | 
 | earnest but letting his hand slip by degrees till these words were | 
 | revealed: "I LOVE YOU." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, you bad thing!" And she hit his hand a smart rap, but reddened | 
 | and looked pleased, nevertheless. | 
 |  | 
 | Just at this juncture the boy felt a slow, fateful grip closing on his | 
 | ear, and a steady lifting impulse. In that wise he was borne across the | 
 | house and deposited in his own seat, under a peppering fire of giggles | 
 | from the whole school. Then the master stood over him during a few | 
 | awful moments, and finally moved away to his throne without saying a | 
 | word. But although Tom's ear tingled, his heart was jubilant. | 
 |  | 
 | As the school quieted down Tom made an honest effort to study, but the | 
 | turmoil within him was too great. In turn he took his place in the | 
 | reading class and made a botch of it; then in the geography class and | 
 | turned lakes into mountains, mountains into rivers, and rivers into | 
 | continents, till chaos was come again; then in the spelling class, and | 
 | got "turned down," by a succession of mere baby words, till he brought | 
 | up at the foot and yielded up the pewter medal which he had worn with | 
 | ostentation for months. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER VII | 
 |  | 
 | THE harder Tom tried to fasten his mind on his book, the more his | 
 | ideas wandered. So at last, with a sigh and a yawn, he gave it up. It | 
 | seemed to him that the noon recess would never come. The air was | 
 | utterly dead. There was not a breath stirring. It was the sleepiest of | 
 | sleepy days. The drowsing murmur of the five and twenty studying | 
 | scholars soothed the soul like the spell that is in the murmur of bees. | 
 | Away off in the flaming sunshine, Cardiff Hill lifted its soft green | 
 | sides through a shimmering veil of heat, tinted with the purple of | 
 | distance; a few birds floated on lazy wing high in the air; no other | 
 | living thing was visible but some cows, and they were asleep. Tom's | 
 | heart ached to be free, or else to have something of interest to do to | 
 | pass the dreary time. His hand wandered into his pocket and his face | 
 | lit up with a glow of gratitude that was prayer, though he did not know | 
 | it. Then furtively the percussion-cap box came out. He released the | 
 | tick and put him on the long flat desk. The creature probably glowed | 
 | with a gratitude that amounted to prayer, too, at this moment, but it | 
 | was premature: for when he started thankfully to travel off, Tom turned | 
 | him aside with a pin and made him take a new direction. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom's bosom friend sat next him, suffering just as Tom had been, and | 
 | now he was deeply and gratefully interested in this entertainment in an | 
 | instant. This bosom friend was Joe Harper. The two boys were sworn | 
 | friends all the week, and embattled enemies on Saturdays. Joe took a | 
 | pin out of his lapel and began to assist in exercising the prisoner. | 
 | The sport grew in interest momently. Soon Tom said that they were | 
 | interfering with each other, and neither getting the fullest benefit of | 
 | the tick. So he put Joe's slate on the desk and drew a line down the | 
 | middle of it from top to bottom. | 
 |  | 
 | "Now," said he, "as long as he is on your side you can stir him up and | 
 | I'll let him alone; but if you let him get away and get on my side, | 
 | you're to leave him alone as long as I can keep him from crossing over." | 
 |  | 
 | "All right, go ahead; start him up." | 
 |  | 
 | The tick escaped from Tom, presently, and crossed the equator. Joe | 
 | harassed him awhile, and then he got away and crossed back again. This | 
 | change of base occurred often. While one boy was worrying the tick with | 
 | absorbing interest, the other would look on with interest as strong, | 
 | the two heads bowed together over the slate, and the two souls dead to | 
 | all things else. At last luck seemed to settle and abide with Joe. The | 
 | tick tried this, that, and the other course, and got as excited and as | 
 | anxious as the boys themselves, but time and again just as he would | 
 | have victory in his very grasp, so to speak, and Tom's fingers would be | 
 | twitching to begin, Joe's pin would deftly head him off, and keep | 
 | possession. At last Tom could stand it no longer. The temptation was | 
 | too strong. So he reached out and lent a hand with his pin. Joe was | 
 | angry in a moment. Said he: | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, you let him alone." | 
 |  | 
 | "I only just want to stir him up a little, Joe." | 
 |  | 
 | "No, sir, it ain't fair; you just let him alone." | 
 |  | 
 | "Blame it, I ain't going to stir him much." | 
 |  | 
 | "Let him alone, I tell you." | 
 |  | 
 | "I won't!" | 
 |  | 
 | "You shall--he's on my side of the line." | 
 |  | 
 | "Look here, Joe Harper, whose is that tick?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I don't care whose tick he is--he's on my side of the line, and you | 
 | sha'n't touch him." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I'll just bet I will, though. He's my tick and I'll do what I | 
 | blame please with him, or die!" | 
 |  | 
 | A tremendous whack came down on Tom's shoulders, and its duplicate on | 
 | Joe's; and for the space of two minutes the dust continued to fly from | 
 | the two jackets and the whole school to enjoy it. The boys had been too | 
 | absorbed to notice the hush that had stolen upon the school awhile | 
 | before when the master came tiptoeing down the room and stood over | 
 | them. He had contemplated a good part of the performance before he | 
 | contributed his bit of variety to it. | 
 |  | 
 | When school broke up at noon, Tom flew to Becky Thatcher, and | 
 | whispered in her ear: | 
 |  | 
 | "Put on your bonnet and let on you're going home; and when you get to | 
 | the corner, give the rest of 'em the slip, and turn down through the | 
 | lane and come back. I'll go the other way and come it over 'em the same | 
 | way." | 
 |  | 
 | So the one went off with one group of scholars, and the other with | 
 | another. In a little while the two met at the bottom of the lane, and | 
 | when they reached the school they had it all to themselves. Then they | 
 | sat together, with a slate before them, and Tom gave Becky the pencil | 
 | and held her hand in his, guiding it, and so created another surprising | 
 | house. When the interest in art began to wane, the two fell to talking. | 
 | Tom was swimming in bliss. He said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Do you love rats?" | 
 |  | 
 | "No! I hate them!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I do, too--LIVE ones. But I mean dead ones, to swing round your | 
 | head with a string." | 
 |  | 
 | "No, I don't care for rats much, anyway. What I like is chewing-gum." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, I should say so! I wish I had some now." | 
 |  | 
 | "Do you? I've got some. I'll let you chew it awhile, but you must give | 
 | it back to me." | 
 |  | 
 | That was agreeable, so they chewed it turn about, and dangled their | 
 | legs against the bench in excess of contentment. | 
 |  | 
 | "Was you ever at a circus?" said Tom. | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, and my pa's going to take me again some time, if I'm good." | 
 |  | 
 | "I been to the circus three or four times--lots of times. Church ain't | 
 | shucks to a circus. There's things going on at a circus all the time. | 
 | I'm going to be a clown in a circus when I grow up." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, are you! That will be nice. They're so lovely, all spotted up." | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, that's so. And they get slathers of money--most a dollar a day, | 
 | Ben Rogers says. Say, Becky, was you ever engaged?" | 
 |  | 
 | "What's that?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, engaged to be married." | 
 |  | 
 | "No." | 
 |  | 
 | "Would you like to?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I reckon so. I don't know. What is it like?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Like? Why it ain't like anything. You only just tell a boy you won't | 
 | ever have anybody but him, ever ever ever, and then you kiss and that's | 
 | all. Anybody can do it." | 
 |  | 
 | "Kiss? What do you kiss for?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, that, you know, is to--well, they always do that." | 
 |  | 
 | "Everybody?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, yes, everybody that's in love with each other. Do you remember | 
 | what I wrote on the slate?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Ye--yes." | 
 |  | 
 | "What was it?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I sha'n't tell you." | 
 |  | 
 | "Shall I tell YOU?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Ye--yes--but some other time." | 
 |  | 
 | "No, now." | 
 |  | 
 | "No, not now--to-morrow." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, no, NOW. Please, Becky--I'll whisper it, I'll whisper it ever so | 
 | easy." | 
 |  | 
 | Becky hesitating, Tom took silence for consent, and passed his arm | 
 | about her waist and whispered the tale ever so softly, with his mouth | 
 | close to her ear. And then he added: | 
 |  | 
 | "Now you whisper it to me--just the same." | 
 |  | 
 | She resisted, for a while, and then said: | 
 |  | 
 | "You turn your face away so you can't see, and then I will. But you | 
 | mustn't ever tell anybody--WILL you, Tom? Now you won't, WILL you?" | 
 |  | 
 | "No, indeed, indeed I won't. Now, Becky." | 
 |  | 
 | He turned his face away. She bent timidly around till her breath | 
 | stirred his curls and whispered, "I--love--you!" | 
 |  | 
 | Then she sprang away and ran around and around the desks and benches, | 
 | with Tom after her, and took refuge in a corner at last, with her | 
 | little white apron to her face. Tom clasped her about her neck and | 
 | pleaded: | 
 |  | 
 | "Now, Becky, it's all done--all over but the kiss. Don't you be afraid | 
 | of that--it ain't anything at all. Please, Becky." And he tugged at her | 
 | apron and the hands. | 
 |  | 
 | By and by she gave up, and let her hands drop; her face, all glowing | 
 | with the struggle, came up and submitted. Tom kissed the red lips and | 
 | said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Now it's all done, Becky. And always after this, you know, you ain't | 
 | ever to love anybody but me, and you ain't ever to marry anybody but | 
 | me, ever never and forever. Will you?" | 
 |  | 
 | "No, I'll never love anybody but you, Tom, and I'll never marry | 
 | anybody but you--and you ain't to ever marry anybody but me, either." | 
 |  | 
 | "Certainly. Of course. That's PART of it. And always coming to school | 
 | or when we're going home, you're to walk with me, when there ain't | 
 | anybody looking--and you choose me and I choose you at parties, because | 
 | that's the way you do when you're engaged." | 
 |  | 
 | "It's so nice. I never heard of it before." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, it's ever so gay! Why, me and Amy Lawrence--" | 
 |  | 
 | The big eyes told Tom his blunder and he stopped, confused. | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, Tom! Then I ain't the first you've ever been engaged to!" | 
 |  | 
 | The child began to cry. Tom said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, don't cry, Becky, I don't care for her any more." | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, you do, Tom--you know you do." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom tried to put his arm about her neck, but she pushed him away and | 
 | turned her face to the wall, and went on crying. Tom tried again, with | 
 | soothing words in his mouth, and was repulsed again. Then his pride was | 
 | up, and he strode away and went outside. He stood about, restless and | 
 | uneasy, for a while, glancing at the door, every now and then, hoping | 
 | she would repent and come to find him. But she did not. Then he began | 
 | to feel badly and fear that he was in the wrong. It was a hard struggle | 
 | with him to make new advances, now, but he nerved himself to it and | 
 | entered. She was still standing back there in the corner, sobbing, with | 
 | her face to the wall. Tom's heart smote him. He went to her and stood a | 
 | moment, not knowing exactly how to proceed. Then he said hesitatingly: | 
 |  | 
 | "Becky, I--I don't care for anybody but you." | 
 |  | 
 | No reply--but sobs. | 
 |  | 
 | "Becky"--pleadingly. "Becky, won't you say something?" | 
 |  | 
 | More sobs. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom got out his chiefest jewel, a brass knob from the top of an | 
 | andiron, and passed it around her so that she could see it, and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Please, Becky, won't you take it?" | 
 |  | 
 | She struck it to the floor. Then Tom marched out of the house and over | 
 | the hills and far away, to return to school no more that day. Presently | 
 | Becky began to suspect. She ran to the door; he was not in sight; she | 
 | flew around to the play-yard; he was not there. Then she called: | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom! Come back, Tom!" | 
 |  | 
 | She listened intently, but there was no answer. She had no companions | 
 | but silence and loneliness. So she sat down to cry again and upbraid | 
 | herself; and by this time the scholars began to gather again, and she | 
 | had to hide her griefs and still her broken heart and take up the cross | 
 | of a long, dreary, aching afternoon, with none among the strangers | 
 | about her to exchange sorrows with. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER VIII | 
 |  | 
 | TOM dodged hither and thither through lanes until he was well out of | 
 | the track of returning scholars, and then fell into a moody jog. He | 
 | crossed a small "branch" two or three times, because of a prevailing | 
 | juvenile superstition that to cross water baffled pursuit. Half an hour | 
 | later he was disappearing behind the Douglas mansion on the summit of | 
 | Cardiff Hill, and the schoolhouse was hardly distinguishable away off | 
 | in the valley behind him. He entered a dense wood, picked his pathless | 
 | way to the centre of it, and sat down on a mossy spot under a spreading | 
 | oak. There was not even a zephyr stirring; the dead noonday heat had | 
 | even stilled the songs of the birds; nature lay in a trance that was | 
 | broken by no sound but the occasional far-off hammering of a | 
 | woodpecker, and this seemed to render the pervading silence and sense | 
 | of loneliness the more profound. The boy's soul was steeped in | 
 | melancholy; his feelings were in happy accord with his surroundings. He | 
 | sat long with his elbows on his knees and his chin in his hands, | 
 | meditating. It seemed to him that life was but a trouble, at best, and | 
 | he more than half envied Jimmy Hodges, so lately released; it must be | 
 | very peaceful, he thought, to lie and slumber and dream forever and | 
 | ever, with the wind whispering through the trees and caressing the | 
 | grass and the flowers over the grave, and nothing to bother and grieve | 
 | about, ever any more. If he only had a clean Sunday-school record he | 
 | could be willing to go, and be done with it all. Now as to this girl. | 
 | What had he done? Nothing. He had meant the best in the world, and been | 
 | treated like a dog--like a very dog. She would be sorry some day--maybe | 
 | when it was too late. Ah, if he could only die TEMPORARILY! | 
 |  | 
 | But the elastic heart of youth cannot be compressed into one | 
 | constrained shape long at a time. Tom presently began to drift | 
 | insensibly back into the concerns of this life again. What if he turned | 
 | his back, now, and disappeared mysteriously? What if he went away--ever | 
 | so far away, into unknown countries beyond the seas--and never came | 
 | back any more! How would she feel then! The idea of being a clown | 
 | recurred to him now, only to fill him with disgust. For frivolity and | 
 | jokes and spotted tights were an offense, when they intruded themselves | 
 | upon a spirit that was exalted into the vague august realm of the | 
 | romantic. No, he would be a soldier, and return after long years, all | 
 | war-worn and illustrious. No--better still, he would join the Indians, | 
 | and hunt buffaloes and go on the warpath in the mountain ranges and the | 
 | trackless great plains of the Far West, and away in the future come | 
 | back a great chief, bristling with feathers, hideous with paint, and | 
 | prance into Sunday-school, some drowsy summer morning, with a | 
 | bloodcurdling war-whoop, and sear the eyeballs of all his companions | 
 | with unappeasable envy. But no, there was something gaudier even than | 
 | this. He would be a pirate! That was it! NOW his future lay plain | 
 | before him, and glowing with unimaginable splendor. How his name would | 
 | fill the world, and make people shudder! How gloriously he would go | 
 | plowing the dancing seas, in his long, low, black-hulled racer, the | 
 | Spirit of the Storm, with his grisly flag flying at the fore! And at | 
 | the zenith of his fame, how he would suddenly appear at the old village | 
 | and stalk into church, brown and weather-beaten, in his black velvet | 
 | doublet and trunks, his great jack-boots, his crimson sash, his belt | 
 | bristling with horse-pistols, his crime-rusted cutlass at his side, his | 
 | slouch hat with waving plumes, his black flag unfurled, with the skull | 
 | and crossbones on it, and hear with swelling ecstasy the whisperings, | 
 | "It's Tom Sawyer the Pirate!--the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main!" | 
 |  | 
 | Yes, it was settled; his career was determined. He would run away from | 
 | home and enter upon it. He would start the very next morning. Therefore | 
 | he must now begin to get ready. He would collect his resources | 
 | together. He went to a rotten log near at hand and began to dig under | 
 | one end of it with his Barlow knife. He soon struck wood that sounded | 
 | hollow. He put his hand there and uttered this incantation impressively: | 
 |  | 
 | "What hasn't come here, come! What's here, stay here!" | 
 |  | 
 | Then he scraped away the dirt, and exposed a pine shingle. He took it | 
 | up and disclosed a shapely little treasure-house whose bottom and sides | 
 | were of shingles. In it lay a marble. Tom's astonishment was boundless! | 
 | He scratched his head with a perplexed air, and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, that beats anything!" | 
 |  | 
 | Then he tossed the marble away pettishly, and stood cogitating. The | 
 | truth was, that a superstition of his had failed, here, which he and | 
 | all his comrades had always looked upon as infallible. If you buried a | 
 | marble with certain necessary incantations, and left it alone a | 
 | fortnight, and then opened the place with the incantation he had just | 
 | used, you would find that all the marbles you had ever lost had | 
 | gathered themselves together there, meantime, no matter how widely they | 
 | had been separated. But now, this thing had actually and unquestionably | 
 | failed. Tom's whole structure of faith was shaken to its foundations. | 
 | He had many a time heard of this thing succeeding but never of its | 
 | failing before. It did not occur to him that he had tried it several | 
 | times before, himself, but could never find the hiding-places | 
 | afterward. He puzzled over the matter some time, and finally decided | 
 | that some witch had interfered and broken the charm. He thought he | 
 | would satisfy himself on that point; so he searched around till he | 
 | found a small sandy spot with a little funnel-shaped depression in it. | 
 | He laid himself down and put his mouth close to this depression and | 
 | called-- | 
 |  | 
 | "Doodle-bug, doodle-bug, tell me what I want to know! Doodle-bug, | 
 | doodle-bug, tell me what I want to know!" | 
 |  | 
 | The sand began to work, and presently a small black bug appeared for a | 
 | second and then darted under again in a fright. | 
 |  | 
 | "He dasn't tell! So it WAS a witch that done it. I just knowed it." | 
 |  | 
 | He well knew the futility of trying to contend against witches, so he | 
 | gave up discouraged. But it occurred to him that he might as well have | 
 | the marble he had just thrown away, and therefore he went and made a | 
 | patient search for it. But he could not find it. Now he went back to | 
 | his treasure-house and carefully placed himself just as he had been | 
 | standing when he tossed the marble away; then he took another marble | 
 | from his pocket and tossed it in the same way, saying: | 
 |  | 
 | "Brother, go find your brother!" | 
 |  | 
 | He watched where it stopped, and went there and looked. But it must | 
 | have fallen short or gone too far; so he tried twice more. The last | 
 | repetition was successful. The two marbles lay within a foot of each | 
 | other. | 
 |  | 
 | Just here the blast of a toy tin trumpet came faintly down the green | 
 | aisles of the forest. Tom flung off his jacket and trousers, turned a | 
 | suspender into a belt, raked away some brush behind the rotten log, | 
 | disclosing a rude bow and arrow, a lath sword and a tin trumpet, and in | 
 | a moment had seized these things and bounded away, barelegged, with | 
 | fluttering shirt. He presently halted under a great elm, blew an | 
 | answering blast, and then began to tiptoe and look warily out, this way | 
 | and that. He said cautiously--to an imaginary company: | 
 |  | 
 | "Hold, my merry men! Keep hid till I blow." | 
 |  | 
 | Now appeared Joe Harper, as airily clad and elaborately armed as Tom. | 
 | Tom called: | 
 |  | 
 | "Hold! Who comes here into Sherwood Forest without my pass?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Guy of Guisborne wants no man's pass. Who art thou that--that--" | 
 |  | 
 | "Dares to hold such language," said Tom, prompting--for they talked | 
 | "by the book," from memory. | 
 |  | 
 | "Who art thou that dares to hold such language?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I, indeed! I am Robin Hood, as thy caitiff carcase soon shall know." | 
 |  | 
 | "Then art thou indeed that famous outlaw? Right gladly will I dispute | 
 | with thee the passes of the merry wood. Have at thee!" | 
 |  | 
 | They took their lath swords, dumped their other traps on the ground, | 
 | struck a fencing attitude, foot to foot, and began a grave, careful | 
 | combat, "two up and two down." Presently Tom said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Now, if you've got the hang, go it lively!" | 
 |  | 
 | So they "went it lively," panting and perspiring with the work. By and | 
 | by Tom shouted: | 
 |  | 
 | "Fall! fall! Why don't you fall?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I sha'n't! Why don't you fall yourself? You're getting the worst of | 
 | it." | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, that ain't anything. I can't fall; that ain't the way it is in | 
 | the book. The book says, 'Then with one back-handed stroke he slew poor | 
 | Guy of Guisborne.' You're to turn around and let me hit you in the | 
 | back." | 
 |  | 
 | There was no getting around the authorities, so Joe turned, received | 
 | the whack and fell. | 
 |  | 
 | "Now," said Joe, getting up, "you got to let me kill YOU. That's fair." | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, I can't do that, it ain't in the book." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, it's blamed mean--that's all." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, say, Joe, you can be Friar Tuck or Much the miller's son, and | 
 | lam me with a quarter-staff; or I'll be the Sheriff of Nottingham and | 
 | you be Robin Hood a little while and kill me." | 
 |  | 
 | This was satisfactory, and so these adventures were carried out. Then | 
 | Tom became Robin Hood again, and was allowed by the treacherous nun to | 
 | bleed his strength away through his neglected wound. And at last Joe, | 
 | representing a whole tribe of weeping outlaws, dragged him sadly forth, | 
 | gave his bow into his feeble hands, and Tom said, "Where this arrow | 
 | falls, there bury poor Robin Hood under the greenwood tree." Then he | 
 | shot the arrow and fell back and would have died, but he lit on a | 
 | nettle and sprang up too gaily for a corpse. | 
 |  | 
 | The boys dressed themselves, hid their accoutrements, and went off | 
 | grieving that there were no outlaws any more, and wondering what modern | 
 | civilization could claim to have done to compensate for their loss. | 
 | They said they would rather be outlaws a year in Sherwood Forest than | 
 | President of the United States forever. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER IX | 
 |  | 
 | AT half-past nine, that night, Tom and Sid were sent to bed, as usual. | 
 | They said their prayers, and Sid was soon asleep. Tom lay awake and | 
 | waited, in restless impatience. When it seemed to him that it must be | 
 | nearly daylight, he heard the clock strike ten! This was despair. He | 
 | would have tossed and fidgeted, as his nerves demanded, but he was | 
 | afraid he might wake Sid. So he lay still, and stared up into the dark. | 
 | Everything was dismally still. By and by, out of the stillness, little, | 
 | scarcely perceptible noises began to emphasize themselves. The ticking | 
 | of the clock began to bring itself into notice. Old beams began to | 
 | crack mysteriously. The stairs creaked faintly. Evidently spirits were | 
 | abroad. A measured, muffled snore issued from Aunt Polly's chamber. And | 
 | now the tiresome chirping of a cricket that no human ingenuity could | 
 | locate, began. Next the ghastly ticking of a deathwatch in the wall at | 
 | the bed's head made Tom shudder--it meant that somebody's days were | 
 | numbered. Then the howl of a far-off dog rose on the night air, and was | 
 | answered by a fainter howl from a remoter distance. Tom was in an | 
 | agony. At last he was satisfied that time had ceased and eternity | 
 | begun; he began to doze, in spite of himself; the clock chimed eleven, | 
 | but he did not hear it. And then there came, mingling with his | 
 | half-formed dreams, a most melancholy caterwauling. The raising of a | 
 | neighboring window disturbed him. A cry of "Scat! you devil!" and the | 
 | crash of an empty bottle against the back of his aunt's woodshed | 
 | brought him wide awake, and a single minute later he was dressed and | 
 | out of the window and creeping along the roof of the "ell" on all | 
 | fours. He "meow'd" with caution once or twice, as he went; then jumped | 
 | to the roof of the woodshed and thence to the ground. Huckleberry Finn | 
 | was there, with his dead cat. The boys moved off and disappeared in the | 
 | gloom. At the end of half an hour they were wading through the tall | 
 | grass of the graveyard. | 
 |  | 
 | It was a graveyard of the old-fashioned Western kind. It was on a | 
 | hill, about a mile and a half from the village. It had a crazy board | 
 | fence around it, which leaned inward in places, and outward the rest of | 
 | the time, but stood upright nowhere. Grass and weeds grew rank over the | 
 | whole cemetery. All the old graves were sunken in, there was not a | 
 | tombstone on the place; round-topped, worm-eaten boards staggered over | 
 | the graves, leaning for support and finding none. "Sacred to the memory | 
 | of" So-and-So had been painted on them once, but it could no longer | 
 | have been read, on the most of them, now, even if there had been light. | 
 |  | 
 | A faint wind moaned through the trees, and Tom feared it might be the | 
 | spirits of the dead, complaining at being disturbed. The boys talked | 
 | little, and only under their breath, for the time and the place and the | 
 | pervading solemnity and silence oppressed their spirits. They found the | 
 | sharp new heap they were seeking, and ensconced themselves within the | 
 | protection of three great elms that grew in a bunch within a few feet | 
 | of the grave. | 
 |  | 
 | Then they waited in silence for what seemed a long time. The hooting | 
 | of a distant owl was all the sound that troubled the dead stillness. | 
 | Tom's reflections grew oppressive. He must force some talk. So he said | 
 | in a whisper: | 
 |  | 
 | "Hucky, do you believe the dead people like it for us to be here?" | 
 |  | 
 | Huckleberry whispered: | 
 |  | 
 | "I wisht I knowed. It's awful solemn like, AIN'T it?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I bet it is." | 
 |  | 
 | There was a considerable pause, while the boys canvassed this matter | 
 | inwardly. Then Tom whispered: | 
 |  | 
 | "Say, Hucky--do you reckon Hoss Williams hears us talking?" | 
 |  | 
 | "O' course he does. Least his sperrit does." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom, after a pause: | 
 |  | 
 | "I wish I'd said Mister Williams. But I never meant any harm. | 
 | Everybody calls him Hoss." | 
 |  | 
 | "A body can't be too partic'lar how they talk 'bout these-yer dead | 
 | people, Tom." | 
 |  | 
 | This was a damper, and conversation died again. | 
 |  | 
 | Presently Tom seized his comrade's arm and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Sh!" | 
 |  | 
 | "What is it, Tom?" And the two clung together with beating hearts. | 
 |  | 
 | "Sh! There 'tis again! Didn't you hear it?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I--" | 
 |  | 
 | "There! Now you hear it." | 
 |  | 
 | "Lord, Tom, they're coming! They're coming, sure. What'll we do?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I dono. Think they'll see us?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, Tom, they can see in the dark, same as cats. I wisht I hadn't | 
 | come." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, don't be afeard. I don't believe they'll bother us. We ain't | 
 | doing any harm. If we keep perfectly still, maybe they won't notice us | 
 | at all." | 
 |  | 
 | "I'll try to, Tom, but, Lord, I'm all of a shiver." | 
 |  | 
 | "Listen!" | 
 |  | 
 | The boys bent their heads together and scarcely breathed. A muffled | 
 | sound of voices floated up from the far end of the graveyard. | 
 |  | 
 | "Look! See there!" whispered Tom. "What is it?" | 
 |  | 
 | "It's devil-fire. Oh, Tom, this is awful." | 
 |  | 
 | Some vague figures approached through the gloom, swinging an | 
 | old-fashioned tin lantern that freckled the ground with innumerable | 
 | little spangles of light. Presently Huckleberry whispered with a | 
 | shudder: | 
 |  | 
 | "It's the devils sure enough. Three of 'em! Lordy, Tom, we're goners! | 
 | Can you pray?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I'll try, but don't you be afeard. They ain't going to hurt us. 'Now | 
 | I lay me down to sleep, I--'" | 
 |  | 
 | "Sh!" | 
 |  | 
 | "What is it, Huck?" | 
 |  | 
 | "They're HUMANS! One of 'em is, anyway. One of 'em's old Muff Potter's | 
 | voice." | 
 |  | 
 | "No--'tain't so, is it?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I bet I know it. Don't you stir nor budge. He ain't sharp enough to | 
 | notice us. Drunk, the same as usual, likely--blamed old rip!" | 
 |  | 
 | "All right, I'll keep still. Now they're stuck. Can't find it. Here | 
 | they come again. Now they're hot. Cold again. Hot again. Red hot! | 
 | They're p'inted right, this time. Say, Huck, I know another o' them | 
 | voices; it's Injun Joe." | 
 |  | 
 | "That's so--that murderin' half-breed! I'd druther they was devils a | 
 | dern sight. What kin they be up to?" | 
 |  | 
 | The whisper died wholly out, now, for the three men had reached the | 
 | grave and stood within a few feet of the boys' hiding-place. | 
 |  | 
 | "Here it is," said the third voice; and the owner of it held the | 
 | lantern up and revealed the face of young Doctor Robinson. | 
 |  | 
 | Potter and Injun Joe were carrying a handbarrow with a rope and a | 
 | couple of shovels on it. They cast down their load and began to open | 
 | the grave. The doctor put the lantern at the head of the grave and came | 
 | and sat down with his back against one of the elm trees. He was so | 
 | close the boys could have touched him. | 
 |  | 
 | "Hurry, men!" he said, in a low voice; "the moon might come out at any | 
 | moment." | 
 |  | 
 | They growled a response and went on digging. For some time there was | 
 | no noise but the grating sound of the spades discharging their freight | 
 | of mould and gravel. It was very monotonous. Finally a spade struck | 
 | upon the coffin with a dull woody accent, and within another minute or | 
 | two the men had hoisted it out on the ground. They pried off the lid | 
 | with their shovels, got out the body and dumped it rudely on the | 
 | ground. The moon drifted from behind the clouds and exposed the pallid | 
 | face. The barrow was got ready and the corpse placed on it, covered | 
 | with a blanket, and bound to its place with the rope. Potter took out a | 
 | large spring-knife and cut off the dangling end of the rope and then | 
 | said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Now the cussed thing's ready, Sawbones, and you'll just out with | 
 | another five, or here she stays." | 
 |  | 
 | "That's the talk!" said Injun Joe. | 
 |  | 
 | "Look here, what does this mean?" said the doctor. "You required your | 
 | pay in advance, and I've paid you." | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, and you done more than that," said Injun Joe, approaching the | 
 | doctor, who was now standing. "Five years ago you drove me away from | 
 | your father's kitchen one night, when I come to ask for something to | 
 | eat, and you said I warn't there for any good; and when I swore I'd get | 
 | even with you if it took a hundred years, your father had me jailed for | 
 | a vagrant. Did you think I'd forget? The Injun blood ain't in me for | 
 | nothing. And now I've GOT you, and you got to SETTLE, you know!" | 
 |  | 
 | He was threatening the doctor, with his fist in his face, by this | 
 | time. The doctor struck out suddenly and stretched the ruffian on the | 
 | ground. Potter dropped his knife, and exclaimed: | 
 |  | 
 | "Here, now, don't you hit my pard!" and the next moment he had | 
 | grappled with the doctor and the two were struggling with might and | 
 | main, trampling the grass and tearing the ground with their heels. | 
 | Injun Joe sprang to his feet, his eyes flaming with passion, snatched | 
 | up Potter's knife, and went creeping, catlike and stooping, round and | 
 | round about the combatants, seeking an opportunity. All at once the | 
 | doctor flung himself free, seized the heavy headboard of Williams' | 
 | grave and felled Potter to the earth with it--and in the same instant | 
 | the half-breed saw his chance and drove the knife to the hilt in the | 
 | young man's breast. He reeled and fell partly upon Potter, flooding him | 
 | with his blood, and in the same moment the clouds blotted out the | 
 | dreadful spectacle and the two frightened boys went speeding away in | 
 | the dark. | 
 |  | 
 | Presently, when the moon emerged again, Injun Joe was standing over | 
 | the two forms, contemplating them. The doctor murmured inarticulately, | 
 | gave a long gasp or two and was still. The half-breed muttered: | 
 |  | 
 | "THAT score is settled--damn you." | 
 |  | 
 | Then he robbed the body. After which he put the fatal knife in | 
 | Potter's open right hand, and sat down on the dismantled coffin. Three | 
 | --four--five minutes passed, and then Potter began to stir and moan. His | 
 | hand closed upon the knife; he raised it, glanced at it, and let it | 
 | fall, with a shudder. Then he sat up, pushing the body from him, and | 
 | gazed at it, and then around him, confusedly. His eyes met Joe's. | 
 |  | 
 | "Lord, how is this, Joe?" he said. | 
 |  | 
 | "It's a dirty business," said Joe, without moving. | 
 |  | 
 | "What did you do it for?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I! I never done it!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Look here! That kind of talk won't wash." | 
 |  | 
 | Potter trembled and grew white. | 
 |  | 
 | "I thought I'd got sober. I'd no business to drink to-night. But it's | 
 | in my head yet--worse'n when we started here. I'm all in a muddle; | 
 | can't recollect anything of it, hardly. Tell me, Joe--HONEST, now, old | 
 | feller--did I do it? Joe, I never meant to--'pon my soul and honor, I | 
 | never meant to, Joe. Tell me how it was, Joe. Oh, it's awful--and him | 
 | so young and promising." | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, you two was scuffling, and he fetched you one with the headboard | 
 | and you fell flat; and then up you come, all reeling and staggering | 
 | like, and snatched the knife and jammed it into him, just as he fetched | 
 | you another awful clip--and here you've laid, as dead as a wedge til | 
 | now." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, I didn't know what I was a-doing. I wish I may die this minute if | 
 | I did. It was all on account of the whiskey and the excitement, I | 
 | reckon. I never used a weepon in my life before, Joe. I've fought, but | 
 | never with weepons. They'll all say that. Joe, don't tell! Say you | 
 | won't tell, Joe--that's a good feller. I always liked you, Joe, and | 
 | stood up for you, too. Don't you remember? You WON'T tell, WILL you, | 
 | Joe?" And the poor creature dropped on his knees before the stolid | 
 | murderer, and clasped his appealing hands. | 
 |  | 
 | "No, you've always been fair and square with me, Muff Potter, and I | 
 | won't go back on you. There, now, that's as fair as a man can say." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, Joe, you're an angel. I'll bless you for this the longest day I | 
 | live." And Potter began to cry. | 
 |  | 
 | "Come, now, that's enough of that. This ain't any time for blubbering. | 
 | You be off yonder way and I'll go this. Move, now, and don't leave any | 
 | tracks behind you." | 
 |  | 
 | Potter started on a trot that quickly increased to a run. The | 
 | half-breed stood looking after him. He muttered: | 
 |  | 
 | "If he's as much stunned with the lick and fuddled with the rum as he | 
 | had the look of being, he won't think of the knife till he's gone so | 
 | far he'll be afraid to come back after it to such a place by himself | 
 | --chicken-heart!" | 
 |  | 
 | Two or three minutes later the murdered man, the blanketed corpse, the | 
 | lidless coffin, and the open grave were under no inspection but the | 
 | moon's. The stillness was complete again, too. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER X | 
 |  | 
 | THE two boys flew on and on, toward the village, speechless with | 
 | horror. They glanced backward over their shoulders from time to time, | 
 | apprehensively, as if they feared they might be followed. Every stump | 
 | that started up in their path seemed a man and an enemy, and made them | 
 | catch their breath; and as they sped by some outlying cottages that lay | 
 | near the village, the barking of the aroused watch-dogs seemed to give | 
 | wings to their feet. | 
 |  | 
 | "If we can only get to the old tannery before we break down!" | 
 | whispered Tom, in short catches between breaths. "I can't stand it much | 
 | longer." | 
 |  | 
 | Huckleberry's hard pantings were his only reply, and the boys fixed | 
 | their eyes on the goal of their hopes and bent to their work to win it. | 
 | They gained steadily on it, and at last, breast to breast, they burst | 
 | through the open door and fell grateful and exhausted in the sheltering | 
 | shadows beyond. By and by their pulses slowed down, and Tom whispered: | 
 |  | 
 | "Huckleberry, what do you reckon'll come of this?" | 
 |  | 
 | "If Doctor Robinson dies, I reckon hanging'll come of it." | 
 |  | 
 | "Do you though?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, I KNOW it, Tom." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom thought a while, then he said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Who'll tell? We?" | 
 |  | 
 | "What are you talking about? S'pose something happened and Injun Joe | 
 | DIDN'T hang? Why, he'd kill us some time or other, just as dead sure as | 
 | we're a laying here." | 
 |  | 
 | "That's just what I was thinking to myself, Huck." | 
 |  | 
 | "If anybody tells, let Muff Potter do it, if he's fool enough. He's | 
 | generally drunk enough." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom said nothing--went on thinking. Presently he whispered: | 
 |  | 
 | "Huck, Muff Potter don't know it. How can he tell?" | 
 |  | 
 | "What's the reason he don't know it?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Because he'd just got that whack when Injun Joe done it. D'you reckon | 
 | he could see anything? D'you reckon he knowed anything?" | 
 |  | 
 | "By hokey, that's so, Tom!" | 
 |  | 
 | "And besides, look-a-here--maybe that whack done for HIM!" | 
 |  | 
 | "No, 'taint likely, Tom. He had liquor in him; I could see that; and | 
 | besides, he always has. Well, when pap's full, you might take and belt | 
 | him over the head with a church and you couldn't phase him. He says so, | 
 | his own self. So it's the same with Muff Potter, of course. But if a | 
 | man was dead sober, I reckon maybe that whack might fetch him; I dono." | 
 |  | 
 | After another reflective silence, Tom said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Hucky, you sure you can keep mum?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, we GOT to keep mum. You know that. That Injun devil wouldn't | 
 | make any more of drownding us than a couple of cats, if we was to | 
 | squeak 'bout this and they didn't hang him. Now, look-a-here, Tom, less | 
 | take and swear to one another--that's what we got to do--swear to keep | 
 | mum." | 
 |  | 
 | "I'm agreed. It's the best thing. Would you just hold hands and swear | 
 | that we--" | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh no, that wouldn't do for this. That's good enough for little | 
 | rubbishy common things--specially with gals, cuz THEY go back on you | 
 | anyway, and blab if they get in a huff--but there orter be writing | 
 | 'bout a big thing like this. And blood." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom's whole being applauded this idea. It was deep, and dark, and | 
 | awful; the hour, the circumstances, the surroundings, were in keeping | 
 | with it. He picked up a clean pine shingle that lay in the moonlight, | 
 | took a little fragment of "red keel" out of his pocket, got the moon on | 
 | his work, and painfully scrawled these lines, emphasizing each slow | 
 | down-stroke by clamping his tongue between his teeth, and letting up | 
 | the pressure on the up-strokes. [See next page.] | 
 |  | 
 |    "Huck Finn and | 
 |     Tom Sawyer swears | 
 |     they will keep mum | 
 |     about This and They | 
 |     wish They may Drop | 
 |     down dead in Their | 
 |     Tracks if They ever | 
 |     Tell and Rot." | 
 |  | 
 | Huckleberry was filled with admiration of Tom's facility in writing, | 
 | and the sublimity of his language. He at once took a pin from his lapel | 
 | and was going to prick his flesh, but Tom said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Hold on! Don't do that. A pin's brass. It might have verdigrease on | 
 | it." | 
 |  | 
 | "What's verdigrease?" | 
 |  | 
 | "It's p'ison. That's what it is. You just swaller some of it once | 
 | --you'll see." | 
 |  | 
 | So Tom unwound the thread from one of his needles, and each boy | 
 | pricked the ball of his thumb and squeezed out a drop of blood. In | 
 | time, after many squeezes, Tom managed to sign his initials, using the | 
 | ball of his little finger for a pen. Then he showed Huckleberry how to | 
 | make an H and an F, and the oath was complete. They buried the shingle | 
 | close to the wall, with some dismal ceremonies and incantations, and | 
 | the fetters that bound their tongues were considered to be locked and | 
 | the key thrown away. | 
 |  | 
 | A figure crept stealthily through a break in the other end of the | 
 | ruined building, now, but they did not notice it. | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom," whispered Huckleberry, "does this keep us from EVER telling | 
 | --ALWAYS?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Of course it does. It don't make any difference WHAT happens, we got | 
 | to keep mum. We'd drop down dead--don't YOU know that?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, I reckon that's so." | 
 |  | 
 | They continued to whisper for some little time. Presently a dog set up | 
 | a long, lugubrious howl just outside--within ten feet of them. The boys | 
 | clasped each other suddenly, in an agony of fright. | 
 |  | 
 | "Which of us does he mean?" gasped Huckleberry. | 
 |  | 
 | "I dono--peep through the crack. Quick!" | 
 |  | 
 | "No, YOU, Tom!" | 
 |  | 
 | "I can't--I can't DO it, Huck!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Please, Tom. There 'tis again!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, lordy, I'm thankful!" whispered Tom. "I know his voice. It's Bull | 
 | Harbison." * | 
 |  | 
 | [* If Mr. Harbison owned a slave named Bull, Tom would have spoken of | 
 | him as "Harbison's Bull," but a son or a dog of that name was "Bull | 
 | Harbison."] | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, that's good--I tell you, Tom, I was most scared to death; I'd a | 
 | bet anything it was a STRAY dog." | 
 |  | 
 | The dog howled again. The boys' hearts sank once more. | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, my! that ain't no Bull Harbison!" whispered Huckleberry. "DO, Tom!" | 
 |  | 
 | Tom, quaking with fear, yielded, and put his eye to the crack. His | 
 | whisper was hardly audible when he said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, Huck, IT S A STRAY DOG!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Quick, Tom, quick! Who does he mean?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Huck, he must mean us both--we're right together." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, Tom, I reckon we're goners. I reckon there ain't no mistake 'bout | 
 | where I'LL go to. I been so wicked." | 
 |  | 
 | "Dad fetch it! This comes of playing hookey and doing everything a | 
 | feller's told NOT to do. I might a been good, like Sid, if I'd a tried | 
 | --but no, I wouldn't, of course. But if ever I get off this time, I lay | 
 | I'll just WALLER in Sunday-schools!" And Tom began to snuffle a little. | 
 |  | 
 | "YOU bad!" and Huckleberry began to snuffle too. "Consound it, Tom | 
 | Sawyer, you're just old pie, 'longside o' what I am. Oh, LORDY, lordy, | 
 | lordy, I wisht I only had half your chance." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom choked off and whispered: | 
 |  | 
 | "Look, Hucky, look! He's got his BACK to us!" | 
 |  | 
 | Hucky looked, with joy in his heart. | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, he has, by jingoes! Did he before?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, he did. But I, like a fool, never thought. Oh, this is bully, | 
 | you know. NOW who can he mean?" | 
 |  | 
 | The howling stopped. Tom pricked up his ears. | 
 |  | 
 | "Sh! What's that?" he whispered. | 
 |  | 
 | "Sounds like--like hogs grunting. No--it's somebody snoring, Tom." | 
 |  | 
 | "That IS it! Where 'bouts is it, Huck?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I bleeve it's down at 'tother end. Sounds so, anyway. Pap used to | 
 | sleep there, sometimes, 'long with the hogs, but laws bless you, he | 
 | just lifts things when HE snores. Besides, I reckon he ain't ever | 
 | coming back to this town any more." | 
 |  | 
 | The spirit of adventure rose in the boys' souls once more. | 
 |  | 
 | "Hucky, do you das't to go if I lead?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I don't like to, much. Tom, s'pose it's Injun Joe!" | 
 |  | 
 | Tom quailed. But presently the temptation rose up strong again and the | 
 | boys agreed to try, with the understanding that they would take to | 
 | their heels if the snoring stopped. So they went tiptoeing stealthily | 
 | down, the one behind the other. When they had got to within five steps | 
 | of the snorer, Tom stepped on a stick, and it broke with a sharp snap. | 
 | The man moaned, writhed a little, and his face came into the moonlight. | 
 | It was Muff Potter. The boys' hearts had stood still, and their hopes | 
 | too, when the man moved, but their fears passed away now. They tiptoed | 
 | out, through the broken weather-boarding, and stopped at a little | 
 | distance to exchange a parting word. That long, lugubrious howl rose on | 
 | the night air again! They turned and saw the strange dog standing | 
 | within a few feet of where Potter was lying, and FACING Potter, with | 
 | his nose pointing heavenward. | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, geeminy, it's HIM!" exclaimed both boys, in a breath. | 
 |  | 
 | "Say, Tom--they say a stray dog come howling around Johnny Miller's | 
 | house, 'bout midnight, as much as two weeks ago; and a whippoorwill | 
 | come in and lit on the banisters and sung, the very same evening; and | 
 | there ain't anybody dead there yet." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I know that. And suppose there ain't. Didn't Gracie Miller fall | 
 | in the kitchen fire and burn herself terrible the very next Saturday?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, but she ain't DEAD. And what's more, she's getting better, too." | 
 |  | 
 | "All right, you wait and see. She's a goner, just as dead sure as Muff | 
 | Potter's a goner. That's what the niggers say, and they know all about | 
 | these kind of things, Huck." | 
 |  | 
 | Then they separated, cogitating. When Tom crept in at his bedroom | 
 | window the night was almost spent. He undressed with excessive caution, | 
 | and fell asleep congratulating himself that nobody knew of his | 
 | escapade. He was not aware that the gently-snoring Sid was awake, and | 
 | had been so for an hour. | 
 |  | 
 | When Tom awoke, Sid was dressed and gone. There was a late look in the | 
 | light, a late sense in the atmosphere. He was startled. Why had he not | 
 | been called--persecuted till he was up, as usual? The thought filled | 
 | him with bodings. Within five minutes he was dressed and down-stairs, | 
 | feeling sore and drowsy. The family were still at table, but they had | 
 | finished breakfast. There was no voice of rebuke; but there were | 
 | averted eyes; there was a silence and an air of solemnity that struck a | 
 | chill to the culprit's heart. He sat down and tried to seem gay, but it | 
 | was up-hill work; it roused no smile, no response, and he lapsed into | 
 | silence and let his heart sink down to the depths. | 
 |  | 
 | After breakfast his aunt took him aside, and Tom almost brightened in | 
 | the hope that he was going to be flogged; but it was not so. His aunt | 
 | wept over him and asked him how he could go and break her old heart so; | 
 | and finally told him to go on, and ruin himself and bring her gray | 
 | hairs with sorrow to the grave, for it was no use for her to try any | 
 | more. This was worse than a thousand whippings, and Tom's heart was | 
 | sorer now than his body. He cried, he pleaded for forgiveness, promised | 
 | to reform over and over again, and then received his dismissal, feeling | 
 | that he had won but an imperfect forgiveness and established but a | 
 | feeble confidence. | 
 |  | 
 | He left the presence too miserable to even feel revengeful toward Sid; | 
 | and so the latter's prompt retreat through the back gate was | 
 | unnecessary. He moped to school gloomy and sad, and took his flogging, | 
 | along with Joe Harper, for playing hookey the day before, with the air | 
 | of one whose heart was busy with heavier woes and wholly dead to | 
 | trifles. Then he betook himself to his seat, rested his elbows on his | 
 | desk and his jaws in his hands, and stared at the wall with the stony | 
 | stare of suffering that has reached the limit and can no further go. | 
 | His elbow was pressing against some hard substance. After a long time | 
 | he slowly and sadly changed his position, and took up this object with | 
 | a sigh. It was in a paper. He unrolled it. A long, lingering, colossal | 
 | sigh followed, and his heart broke. It was his brass andiron knob! | 
 |  | 
 | This final feather broke the camel's back. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XI | 
 |  | 
 | CLOSE upon the hour of noon the whole village was suddenly electrified | 
 | with the ghastly news. No need of the as yet undreamed-of telegraph; | 
 | the tale flew from man to man, from group to group, from house to | 
 | house, with little less than telegraphic speed. Of course the | 
 | schoolmaster gave holiday for that afternoon; the town would have | 
 | thought strangely of him if he had not. | 
 |  | 
 | A gory knife had been found close to the murdered man, and it had been | 
 | recognized by somebody as belonging to Muff Potter--so the story ran. | 
 | And it was said that a belated citizen had come upon Potter washing | 
 | himself in the "branch" about one or two o'clock in the morning, and | 
 | that Potter had at once sneaked off--suspicious circumstances, | 
 | especially the washing which was not a habit with Potter. It was also | 
 | said that the town had been ransacked for this "murderer" (the public | 
 | are not slow in the matter of sifting evidence and arriving at a | 
 | verdict), but that he could not be found. Horsemen had departed down | 
 | all the roads in every direction, and the Sheriff "was confident" that | 
 | he would be captured before night. | 
 |  | 
 | All the town was drifting toward the graveyard. Tom's heartbreak | 
 | vanished and he joined the procession, not because he would not a | 
 | thousand times rather go anywhere else, but because an awful, | 
 | unaccountable fascination drew him on. Arrived at the dreadful place, | 
 | he wormed his small body through the crowd and saw the dismal | 
 | spectacle. It seemed to him an age since he was there before. Somebody | 
 | pinched his arm. He turned, and his eyes met Huckleberry's. Then both | 
 | looked elsewhere at once, and wondered if anybody had noticed anything | 
 | in their mutual glance. But everybody was talking, and intent upon the | 
 | grisly spectacle before them. | 
 |  | 
 | "Poor fellow!" "Poor young fellow!" "This ought to be a lesson to | 
 | grave robbers!" "Muff Potter'll hang for this if they catch him!" This | 
 | was the drift of remark; and the minister said, "It was a judgment; His | 
 | hand is here." | 
 |  | 
 | Now Tom shivered from head to heel; for his eye fell upon the stolid | 
 | face of Injun Joe. At this moment the crowd began to sway and struggle, | 
 | and voices shouted, "It's him! it's him! he's coming himself!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Who? Who?" from twenty voices. | 
 |  | 
 | "Muff Potter!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Hallo, he's stopped!--Look out, he's turning! Don't let him get away!" | 
 |  | 
 | People in the branches of the trees over Tom's head said he wasn't | 
 | trying to get away--he only looked doubtful and perplexed. | 
 |  | 
 | "Infernal impudence!" said a bystander; "wanted to come and take a | 
 | quiet look at his work, I reckon--didn't expect any company." | 
 |  | 
 | The crowd fell apart, now, and the Sheriff came through, | 
 | ostentatiously leading Potter by the arm. The poor fellow's face was | 
 | haggard, and his eyes showed the fear that was upon him. When he stood | 
 | before the murdered man, he shook as with a palsy, and he put his face | 
 | in his hands and burst into tears. | 
 |  | 
 | "I didn't do it, friends," he sobbed; "'pon my word and honor I never | 
 | done it." | 
 |  | 
 | "Who's accused you?" shouted a voice. | 
 |  | 
 | This shot seemed to carry home. Potter lifted his face and looked | 
 | around him with a pathetic hopelessness in his eyes. He saw Injun Joe, | 
 | and exclaimed: | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, Injun Joe, you promised me you'd never--" | 
 |  | 
 | "Is that your knife?" and it was thrust before him by the Sheriff. | 
 |  | 
 | Potter would have fallen if they had not caught him and eased him to | 
 | the ground. Then he said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Something told me 't if I didn't come back and get--" He shuddered; | 
 | then waved his nerveless hand with a vanquished gesture and said, "Tell | 
 | 'em, Joe, tell 'em--it ain't any use any more." | 
 |  | 
 | Then Huckleberry and Tom stood dumb and staring, and heard the | 
 | stony-hearted liar reel off his serene statement, they expecting every | 
 | moment that the clear sky would deliver God's lightnings upon his head, | 
 | and wondering to see how long the stroke was delayed. And when he had | 
 | finished and still stood alive and whole, their wavering impulse to | 
 | break their oath and save the poor betrayed prisoner's life faded and | 
 | vanished away, for plainly this miscreant had sold himself to Satan and | 
 | it would be fatal to meddle with the property of such a power as that. | 
 |  | 
 | "Why didn't you leave? What did you want to come here for?" somebody | 
 | said. | 
 |  | 
 | "I couldn't help it--I couldn't help it," Potter moaned. "I wanted to | 
 | run away, but I couldn't seem to come anywhere but here." And he fell | 
 | to sobbing again. | 
 |  | 
 | Injun Joe repeated his statement, just as calmly, a few minutes | 
 | afterward on the inquest, under oath; and the boys, seeing that the | 
 | lightnings were still withheld, were confirmed in their belief that Joe | 
 | had sold himself to the devil. He was now become, to them, the most | 
 | balefully interesting object they had ever looked upon, and they could | 
 | not take their fascinated eyes from his face. | 
 |  | 
 | They inwardly resolved to watch him nights, when opportunity should | 
 | offer, in the hope of getting a glimpse of his dread master. | 
 |  | 
 | Injun Joe helped to raise the body of the murdered man and put it in a | 
 | wagon for removal; and it was whispered through the shuddering crowd | 
 | that the wound bled a little! The boys thought that this happy | 
 | circumstance would turn suspicion in the right direction; but they were | 
 | disappointed, for more than one villager remarked: | 
 |  | 
 | "It was within three feet of Muff Potter when it done it." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom's fearful secret and gnawing conscience disturbed his sleep for as | 
 | much as a week after this; and at breakfast one morning Sid said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, you pitch around and talk in your sleep so much that you keep me | 
 | awake half the time." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom blanched and dropped his eyes. | 
 |  | 
 | "It's a bad sign," said Aunt Polly, gravely. "What you got on your | 
 | mind, Tom?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Nothing. Nothing 't I know of." But the boy's hand shook so that he | 
 | spilled his coffee. | 
 |  | 
 | "And you do talk such stuff," Sid said. "Last night you said, 'It's | 
 | blood, it's blood, that's what it is!' You said that over and over. And | 
 | you said, 'Don't torment me so--I'll tell!' Tell WHAT? What is it | 
 | you'll tell?" | 
 |  | 
 | Everything was swimming before Tom. There is no telling what might | 
 | have happened, now, but luckily the concern passed out of Aunt Polly's | 
 | face and she came to Tom's relief without knowing it. She said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Sho! It's that dreadful murder. I dream about it most every night | 
 | myself. Sometimes I dream it's me that done it." | 
 |  | 
 | Mary said she had been affected much the same way. Sid seemed | 
 | satisfied. Tom got out of the presence as quick as he plausibly could, | 
 | and after that he complained of toothache for a week, and tied up his | 
 | jaws every night. He never knew that Sid lay nightly watching, and | 
 | frequently slipped the bandage free and then leaned on his elbow | 
 | listening a good while at a time, and afterward slipped the bandage | 
 | back to its place again. Tom's distress of mind wore off gradually and | 
 | the toothache grew irksome and was discarded. If Sid really managed to | 
 | make anything out of Tom's disjointed mutterings, he kept it to himself. | 
 |  | 
 | It seemed to Tom that his schoolmates never would get done holding | 
 | inquests on dead cats, and thus keeping his trouble present to his | 
 | mind. Sid noticed that Tom never was coroner at one of these inquiries, | 
 | though it had been his habit to take the lead in all new enterprises; | 
 | he noticed, too, that Tom never acted as a witness--and that was | 
 | strange; and Sid did not overlook the fact that Tom even showed a | 
 | marked aversion to these inquests, and always avoided them when he | 
 | could. Sid marvelled, but said nothing. However, even inquests went out | 
 | of vogue at last, and ceased to torture Tom's conscience. | 
 |  | 
 | Every day or two, during this time of sorrow, Tom watched his | 
 | opportunity and went to the little grated jail-window and smuggled such | 
 | small comforts through to the "murderer" as he could get hold of. The | 
 | jail was a trifling little brick den that stood in a marsh at the edge | 
 | of the village, and no guards were afforded for it; indeed, it was | 
 | seldom occupied. These offerings greatly helped to ease Tom's | 
 | conscience. | 
 |  | 
 | The villagers had a strong desire to tar-and-feather Injun Joe and | 
 | ride him on a rail, for body-snatching, but so formidable was his | 
 | character that nobody could be found who was willing to take the lead | 
 | in the matter, so it was dropped. He had been careful to begin both of | 
 | his inquest-statements with the fight, without confessing the | 
 | grave-robbery that preceded it; therefore it was deemed wisest not | 
 | to try the case in the courts at present. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XII | 
 |  | 
 | ONE of the reasons why Tom's mind had drifted away from its secret | 
 | troubles was, that it had found a new and weighty matter to interest | 
 | itself about. Becky Thatcher had stopped coming to school. Tom had | 
 | struggled with his pride a few days, and tried to "whistle her down the | 
 | wind," but failed. He began to find himself hanging around her father's | 
 | house, nights, and feeling very miserable. She was ill. What if she | 
 | should die! There was distraction in the thought. He no longer took an | 
 | interest in war, nor even in piracy. The charm of life was gone; there | 
 | was nothing but dreariness left. He put his hoop away, and his bat; | 
 | there was no joy in them any more. His aunt was concerned. She began to | 
 | try all manner of remedies on him. She was one of those people who are | 
 | infatuated with patent medicines and all new-fangled methods of | 
 | producing health or mending it. She was an inveterate experimenter in | 
 | these things. When something fresh in this line came out she was in a | 
 | fever, right away, to try it; not on herself, for she was never ailing, | 
 | but on anybody else that came handy. She was a subscriber for all the | 
 | "Health" periodicals and phrenological frauds; and the solemn ignorance | 
 | they were inflated with was breath to her nostrils. All the "rot" they | 
 | contained about ventilation, and how to go to bed, and how to get up, | 
 | and what to eat, and what to drink, and how much exercise to take, and | 
 | what frame of mind to keep one's self in, and what sort of clothing to | 
 | wear, was all gospel to her, and she never observed that her | 
 | health-journals of the current month customarily upset everything they | 
 | had recommended the month before. She was as simple-hearted and honest | 
 | as the day was long, and so she was an easy victim. She gathered | 
 | together her quack periodicals and her quack medicines, and thus armed | 
 | with death, went about on her pale horse, metaphorically speaking, with | 
 | "hell following after." But she never suspected that she was not an | 
 | angel of healing and the balm of Gilead in disguise, to the suffering | 
 | neighbors. | 
 |  | 
 | The water treatment was new, now, and Tom's low condition was a | 
 | windfall to her. She had him out at daylight every morning, stood him | 
 | up in the woodshed and drowned him with a deluge of cold water; then | 
 | she scrubbed him down with a towel like a file, and so brought him to; | 
 | then she rolled him up in a wet sheet and put him away under blankets | 
 | till she sweated his soul clean and "the yellow stains of it came | 
 | through his pores"--as Tom said. | 
 |  | 
 | Yet notwithstanding all this, the boy grew more and more melancholy | 
 | and pale and dejected. She added hot baths, sitz baths, shower baths, | 
 | and plunges. The boy remained as dismal as a hearse. She began to | 
 | assist the water with a slim oatmeal diet and blister-plasters. She | 
 | calculated his capacity as she would a jug's, and filled him up every | 
 | day with quack cure-alls. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom had become indifferent to persecution by this time. This phase | 
 | filled the old lady's heart with consternation. This indifference must | 
 | be broken up at any cost. Now she heard of Pain-killer for the first | 
 | time. She ordered a lot at once. She tasted it and was filled with | 
 | gratitude. It was simply fire in a liquid form. She dropped the water | 
 | treatment and everything else, and pinned her faith to Pain-killer. She | 
 | gave Tom a teaspoonful and watched with the deepest anxiety for the | 
 | result. Her troubles were instantly at rest, her soul at peace again; | 
 | for the "indifference" was broken up. The boy could not have shown a | 
 | wilder, heartier interest, if she had built a fire under him. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom felt that it was time to wake up; this sort of life might be | 
 | romantic enough, in his blighted condition, but it was getting to have | 
 | too little sentiment and too much distracting variety about it. So he | 
 | thought over various plans for relief, and finally hit pon that of | 
 | professing to be fond of Pain-killer. He asked for it so often that he | 
 | became a nuisance, and his aunt ended by telling him to help himself | 
 | and quit bothering her. If it had been Sid, she would have had no | 
 | misgivings to alloy her delight; but since it was Tom, she watched the | 
 | bottle clandestinely. She found that the medicine did really diminish, | 
 | but it did not occur to her that the boy was mending the health of a | 
 | crack in the sitting-room floor with it. | 
 |  | 
 | One day Tom was in the act of dosing the crack when his aunt's yellow | 
 | cat came along, purring, eying the teaspoon avariciously, and begging | 
 | for a taste. Tom said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Don't ask for it unless you want it, Peter." | 
 |  | 
 | But Peter signified that he did want it. | 
 |  | 
 | "You better make sure." | 
 |  | 
 | Peter was sure. | 
 |  | 
 | "Now you've asked for it, and I'll give it to you, because there ain't | 
 | anything mean about me; but if you find you don't like it, you mustn't | 
 | blame anybody but your own self." | 
 |  | 
 | Peter was agreeable. So Tom pried his mouth open and poured down the | 
 | Pain-killer. Peter sprang a couple of yards in the air, and then | 
 | delivered a war-whoop and set off round and round the room, banging | 
 | against furniture, upsetting flower-pots, and making general havoc. | 
 | Next he rose on his hind feet and pranced around, in a frenzy of | 
 | enjoyment, with his head over his shoulder and his voice proclaiming | 
 | his unappeasable happiness. Then he went tearing around the house again | 
 | spreading chaos and destruction in his path. Aunt Polly entered in time | 
 | to see him throw a few double summersets, deliver a final mighty | 
 | hurrah, and sail through the open window, carrying the rest of the | 
 | flower-pots with him. The old lady stood petrified with astonishment, | 
 | peering over her glasses; Tom lay on the floor expiring with laughter. | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, what on earth ails that cat?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I don't know, aunt," gasped the boy. | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, I never see anything like it. What did make him act so?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Deed I don't know, Aunt Polly; cats always act so when they're having | 
 | a good time." | 
 |  | 
 | "They do, do they?" There was something in the tone that made Tom | 
 | apprehensive. | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes'm. That is, I believe they do." | 
 |  | 
 | "You DO?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes'm." | 
 |  | 
 | The old lady was bending down, Tom watching, with interest emphasized | 
 | by anxiety. Too late he divined her "drift." The handle of the telltale | 
 | teaspoon was visible under the bed-valance. Aunt Polly took it, held it | 
 | up. Tom winced, and dropped his eyes. Aunt Polly raised him by the | 
 | usual handle--his ear--and cracked his head soundly with her thimble. | 
 |  | 
 | "Now, sir, what did you want to treat that poor dumb beast so, for?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I done it out of pity for him--because he hadn't any aunt." | 
 |  | 
 | "Hadn't any aunt!--you numskull. What has that got to do with it?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Heaps. Because if he'd had one she'd a burnt him out herself! She'd a | 
 | roasted his bowels out of him 'thout any more feeling than if he was a | 
 | human!" | 
 |  | 
 | Aunt Polly felt a sudden pang of remorse. This was putting the thing | 
 | in a new light; what was cruelty to a cat MIGHT be cruelty to a boy, | 
 | too. She began to soften; she felt sorry. Her eyes watered a little, | 
 | and she put her hand on Tom's head and said gently: | 
 |  | 
 | "I was meaning for the best, Tom. And, Tom, it DID do you good." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom looked up in her face with just a perceptible twinkle peeping | 
 | through his gravity. | 
 |  | 
 | "I know you was meaning for the best, aunty, and so was I with Peter. | 
 | It done HIM good, too. I never see him get around so since--" | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, go 'long with you, Tom, before you aggravate me again. And you | 
 | try and see if you can't be a good boy, for once, and you needn't take | 
 | any more medicine." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom reached school ahead of time. It was noticed that this strange | 
 | thing had been occurring every day latterly. And now, as usual of late, | 
 | he hung about the gate of the schoolyard instead of playing with his | 
 | comrades. He was sick, he said, and he looked it. He tried to seem to | 
 | be looking everywhere but whither he really was looking--down the road. | 
 | Presently Jeff Thatcher hove in sight, and Tom's face lighted; he gazed | 
 | a moment, and then turned sorrowfully away. When Jeff arrived, Tom | 
 | accosted him; and "led up" warily to opportunities for remark about | 
 | Becky, but the giddy lad never could see the bait. Tom watched and | 
 | watched, hoping whenever a frisking frock came in sight, and hating the | 
 | owner of it as soon as he saw she was not the right one. At last frocks | 
 | ceased to appear, and he dropped hopelessly into the dumps; he entered | 
 | the empty schoolhouse and sat down to suffer. Then one more frock | 
 | passed in at the gate, and Tom's heart gave a great bound. The next | 
 | instant he was out, and "going on" like an Indian; yelling, laughing, | 
 | chasing boys, jumping over the fence at risk of life and limb, throwing | 
 | handsprings, standing on his head--doing all the heroic things he could | 
 | conceive of, and keeping a furtive eye out, all the while, to see if | 
 | Becky Thatcher was noticing. But she seemed to be unconscious of it | 
 | all; she never looked. Could it be possible that she was not aware that | 
 | he was there? He carried his exploits to her immediate vicinity; came | 
 | war-whooping around, snatched a boy's cap, hurled it to the roof of the | 
 | schoolhouse, broke through a group of boys, tumbling them in every | 
 | direction, and fell sprawling, himself, under Becky's nose, almost | 
 | upsetting her--and she turned, with her nose in the air, and he heard | 
 | her say: "Mf! some people think they're mighty smart--always showing | 
 | off!" | 
 |  | 
 | Tom's cheeks burned. He gathered himself up and sneaked off, crushed | 
 | and crestfallen. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XIII | 
 |  | 
 | TOM'S mind was made up now. He was gloomy and desperate. He was a | 
 | forsaken, friendless boy, he said; nobody loved him; when they found | 
 | out what they had driven him to, perhaps they would be sorry; he had | 
 | tried to do right and get along, but they would not let him; since | 
 | nothing would do them but to be rid of him, let it be so; and let them | 
 | blame HIM for the consequences--why shouldn't they? What right had the | 
 | friendless to complain? Yes, they had forced him to it at last: he | 
 | would lead a life of crime. There was no choice. | 
 |  | 
 | By this time he was far down Meadow Lane, and the bell for school to | 
 | "take up" tinkled faintly upon his ear. He sobbed, now, to think he | 
 | should never, never hear that old familiar sound any more--it was very | 
 | hard, but it was forced on him; since he was driven out into the cold | 
 | world, he must submit--but he forgave them. Then the sobs came thick | 
 | and fast. | 
 |  | 
 | Just at this point he met his soul's sworn comrade, Joe Harper | 
 | --hard-eyed, and with evidently a great and dismal purpose in his heart. | 
 | Plainly here were "two souls with but a single thought." Tom, wiping | 
 | his eyes with his sleeve, began to blubber out something about a | 
 | resolution to escape from hard usage and lack of sympathy at home by | 
 | roaming abroad into the great world never to return; and ended by | 
 | hoping that Joe would not forget him. | 
 |  | 
 | But it transpired that this was a request which Joe had just been | 
 | going to make of Tom, and had come to hunt him up for that purpose. His | 
 | mother had whipped him for drinking some cream which he had never | 
 | tasted and knew nothing about; it was plain that she was tired of him | 
 | and wished him to go; if she felt that way, there was nothing for him | 
 | to do but succumb; he hoped she would be happy, and never regret having | 
 | driven her poor boy out into the unfeeling world to suffer and die. | 
 |  | 
 | As the two boys walked sorrowing along, they made a new compact to | 
 | stand by each other and be brothers and never separate till death | 
 | relieved them of their troubles. Then they began to lay their plans. | 
 | Joe was for being a hermit, and living on crusts in a remote cave, and | 
 | dying, some time, of cold and want and grief; but after listening to | 
 | Tom, he conceded that there were some conspicuous advantages about a | 
 | life of crime, and so he consented to be a pirate. | 
 |  | 
 | Three miles below St. Petersburg, at a point where the Mississippi | 
 | River was a trifle over a mile wide, there was a long, narrow, wooded | 
 | island, with a shallow bar at the head of it, and this offered well as | 
 | a rendezvous. It was not inhabited; it lay far over toward the further | 
 | shore, abreast a dense and almost wholly unpeopled forest. So Jackson's | 
 | Island was chosen. Who were to be the subjects of their piracies was a | 
 | matter that did not occur to them. Then they hunted up Huckleberry | 
 | Finn, and he joined them promptly, for all careers were one to him; he | 
 | was indifferent. They presently separated to meet at a lonely spot on | 
 | the river-bank two miles above the village at the favorite hour--which | 
 | was midnight. There was a small log raft there which they meant to | 
 | capture. Each would bring hooks and lines, and such provision as he | 
 | could steal in the most dark and mysterious way--as became outlaws. And | 
 | before the afternoon was done, they had all managed to enjoy the sweet | 
 | glory of spreading the fact that pretty soon the town would "hear | 
 | something." All who got this vague hint were cautioned to "be mum and | 
 | wait." | 
 |  | 
 | About midnight Tom arrived with a boiled ham and a few trifles, | 
 | and stopped in a dense undergrowth on a small bluff overlooking the | 
 | meeting-place. It was starlight, and very still. The mighty river lay | 
 | like an ocean at rest. Tom listened a moment, but no sound disturbed the | 
 | quiet. Then he gave a low, distinct whistle. It was answered from under | 
 | the bluff. Tom whistled twice more; these signals were answered in the | 
 | same way. Then a guarded voice said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Who goes there?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom Sawyer, the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main. Name your names." | 
 |  | 
 | "Huck Finn the Red-Handed, and Joe Harper the Terror of the Seas." Tom | 
 | had furnished these titles, from his favorite literature. | 
 |  | 
 | "'Tis well. Give the countersign." | 
 |  | 
 | Two hoarse whispers delivered the same awful word simultaneously to | 
 | the brooding night: | 
 |  | 
 | "BLOOD!" | 
 |  | 
 | Then Tom tumbled his ham over the bluff and let himself down after it, | 
 | tearing both skin and clothes to some extent in the effort. There was | 
 | an easy, comfortable path along the shore under the bluff, but it | 
 | lacked the advantages of difficulty and danger so valued by a pirate. | 
 |  | 
 | The Terror of the Seas had brought a side of bacon, and had about worn | 
 | himself out with getting it there. Finn the Red-Handed had stolen a | 
 | skillet and a quantity of half-cured leaf tobacco, and had also brought | 
 | a few corn-cobs to make pipes with. But none of the pirates smoked or | 
 | "chewed" but himself. The Black Avenger of the Spanish Main said it | 
 | would never do to start without some fire. That was a wise thought; | 
 | matches were hardly known there in that day. They saw a fire | 
 | smouldering upon a great raft a hundred yards above, and they went | 
 | stealthily thither and helped themselves to a chunk. They made an | 
 | imposing adventure of it, saying, "Hist!" every now and then, and | 
 | suddenly halting with finger on lip; moving with hands on imaginary | 
 | dagger-hilts; and giving orders in dismal whispers that if "the foe" | 
 | stirred, to "let him have it to the hilt," because "dead men tell no | 
 | tales." They knew well enough that the raftsmen were all down at the | 
 | village laying in stores or having a spree, but still that was no | 
 | excuse for their conducting this thing in an unpiratical way. | 
 |  | 
 | They shoved off, presently, Tom in command, Huck at the after oar and | 
 | Joe at the forward. Tom stood amidships, gloomy-browed, and with folded | 
 | arms, and gave his orders in a low, stern whisper: | 
 |  | 
 | "Luff, and bring her to the wind!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Aye-aye, sir!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Steady, steady-y-y-y!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Steady it is, sir!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Let her go off a point!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Point it is, sir!" | 
 |  | 
 | As the boys steadily and monotonously drove the raft toward mid-stream | 
 | it was no doubt understood that these orders were given only for | 
 | "style," and were not intended to mean anything in particular. | 
 |  | 
 | "What sail's she carrying?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Courses, tops'ls, and flying-jib, sir." | 
 |  | 
 | "Send the r'yals up! Lay out aloft, there, half a dozen of ye | 
 | --foretopmaststuns'l! Lively, now!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Aye-aye, sir!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Shake out that maintogalans'l! Sheets and braces! NOW my hearties!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Aye-aye, sir!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Hellum-a-lee--hard a port! Stand by to meet her when she comes! Port, | 
 | port! NOW, men! With a will! Stead-y-y-y!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Steady it is, sir!" | 
 |  | 
 | The raft drew beyond the middle of the river; the boys pointed her | 
 | head right, and then lay on their oars. The river was not high, so | 
 | there was not more than a two or three mile current. Hardly a word was | 
 | said during the next three-quarters of an hour. Now the raft was | 
 | passing before the distant town. Two or three glimmering lights showed | 
 | where it lay, peacefully sleeping, beyond the vague vast sweep of | 
 | star-gemmed water, unconscious of the tremendous event that was happening. | 
 | The Black Avenger stood still with folded arms, "looking his last" upon | 
 | the scene of his former joys and his later sufferings, and wishing | 
 | "she" could see him now, abroad on the wild sea, facing peril and death | 
 | with dauntless heart, going to his doom with a grim smile on his lips. | 
 | It was but a small strain on his imagination to remove Jackson's Island | 
 | beyond eyeshot of the village, and so he "looked his last" with a | 
 | broken and satisfied heart. The other pirates were looking their last, | 
 | too; and they all looked so long that they came near letting the | 
 | current drift them out of the range of the island. But they discovered | 
 | the danger in time, and made shift to avert it. About two o'clock in | 
 | the morning the raft grounded on the bar two hundred yards above the | 
 | head of the island, and they waded back and forth until they had landed | 
 | their freight. Part of the little raft's belongings consisted of an old | 
 | sail, and this they spread over a nook in the bushes for a tent to | 
 | shelter their provisions; but they themselves would sleep in the open | 
 | air in good weather, as became outlaws. | 
 |  | 
 | They built a fire against the side of a great log twenty or thirty | 
 | steps within the sombre depths of the forest, and then cooked some | 
 | bacon in the frying-pan for supper, and used up half of the corn "pone" | 
 | stock they had brought. It seemed glorious sport to be feasting in that | 
 | wild, free way in the virgin forest of an unexplored and uninhabited | 
 | island, far from the haunts of men, and they said they never would | 
 | return to civilization. The climbing fire lit up their faces and threw | 
 | its ruddy glare upon the pillared tree-trunks of their forest temple, | 
 | and upon the varnished foliage and festooning vines. | 
 |  | 
 | When the last crisp slice of bacon was gone, and the last allowance of | 
 | corn pone devoured, the boys stretched themselves out on the grass, | 
 | filled with contentment. They could have found a cooler place, but they | 
 | would not deny themselves such a romantic feature as the roasting | 
 | camp-fire. | 
 |  | 
 | "AIN'T it gay?" said Joe. | 
 |  | 
 | "It's NUTS!" said Tom. "What would the boys say if they could see us?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Say? Well, they'd just die to be here--hey, Hucky!" | 
 |  | 
 | "I reckon so," said Huckleberry; "anyways, I'm suited. I don't want | 
 | nothing better'n this. I don't ever get enough to eat, gen'ally--and | 
 | here they can't come and pick at a feller and bullyrag him so." | 
 |  | 
 | "It's just the life for me," said Tom. "You don't have to get up, | 
 | mornings, and you don't have to go to school, and wash, and all that | 
 | blame foolishness. You see a pirate don't have to do ANYTHING, Joe, | 
 | when he's ashore, but a hermit HE has to be praying considerable, and | 
 | then he don't have any fun, anyway, all by himself that way." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh yes, that's so," said Joe, "but I hadn't thought much about it, | 
 | you know. I'd a good deal rather be a pirate, now that I've tried it." | 
 |  | 
 | "You see," said Tom, "people don't go much on hermits, nowadays, like | 
 | they used to in old times, but a pirate's always respected. And a | 
 | hermit's got to sleep on the hardest place he can find, and put | 
 | sackcloth and ashes on his head, and stand out in the rain, and--" | 
 |  | 
 | "What does he put sackcloth and ashes on his head for?" inquired Huck. | 
 |  | 
 | "I dono. But they've GOT to do it. Hermits always do. You'd have to do | 
 | that if you was a hermit." | 
 |  | 
 | "Dern'd if I would," said Huck. | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, what would you do?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I dono. But I wouldn't do that." | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, Huck, you'd HAVE to. How'd you get around it?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, I just wouldn't stand it. I'd run away." | 
 |  | 
 | "Run away! Well, you WOULD be a nice old slouch of a hermit. You'd be | 
 | a disgrace." | 
 |  | 
 | The Red-Handed made no response, being better employed. He had | 
 | finished gouging out a cob, and now he fitted a weed stem to it, loaded | 
 | it with tobacco, and was pressing a coal to the charge and blowing a | 
 | cloud of fragrant smoke--he was in the full bloom of luxurious | 
 | contentment. The other pirates envied him this majestic vice, and | 
 | secretly resolved to acquire it shortly. Presently Huck said: | 
 |  | 
 | "What does pirates have to do?" | 
 |  | 
 | Tom said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, they have just a bully time--take ships and burn them, and get | 
 | the money and bury it in awful places in their island where there's | 
 | ghosts and things to watch it, and kill everybody in the ships--make | 
 | 'em walk a plank." | 
 |  | 
 | "And they carry the women to the island," said Joe; "they don't kill | 
 | the women." | 
 |  | 
 | "No," assented Tom, "they don't kill the women--they're too noble. And | 
 | the women's always beautiful, too. | 
 |  | 
 | "And don't they wear the bulliest clothes! Oh no! All gold and silver | 
 | and di'monds," said Joe, with enthusiasm. | 
 |  | 
 | "Who?" said Huck. | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, the pirates." | 
 |  | 
 | Huck scanned his own clothing forlornly. | 
 |  | 
 | "I reckon I ain't dressed fitten for a pirate," said he, with a | 
 | regretful pathos in his voice; "but I ain't got none but these." | 
 |  | 
 | But the other boys told him the fine clothes would come fast enough, | 
 | after they should have begun their adventures. They made him understand | 
 | that his poor rags would do to begin with, though it was customary for | 
 | wealthy pirates to start with a proper wardrobe. | 
 |  | 
 | Gradually their talk died out and drowsiness began to steal upon the | 
 | eyelids of the little waifs. The pipe dropped from the fingers of the | 
 | Red-Handed, and he slept the sleep of the conscience-free and the | 
 | weary. The Terror of the Seas and the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main | 
 | had more difficulty in getting to sleep. They said their prayers | 
 | inwardly, and lying down, since there was nobody there with authority | 
 | to make them kneel and recite aloud; in truth, they had a mind not to | 
 | say them at all, but they were afraid to proceed to such lengths as | 
 | that, lest they might call down a sudden and special thunderbolt from | 
 | heaven. Then at once they reached and hovered upon the imminent verge | 
 | of sleep--but an intruder came, now, that would not "down." It was | 
 | conscience. They began to feel a vague fear that they had been doing | 
 | wrong to run away; and next they thought of the stolen meat, and then | 
 | the real torture came. They tried to argue it away by reminding | 
 | conscience that they had purloined sweetmeats and apples scores of | 
 | times; but conscience was not to be appeased by such thin | 
 | plausibilities; it seemed to them, in the end, that there was no | 
 | getting around the stubborn fact that taking sweetmeats was only | 
 | "hooking," while taking bacon and hams and such valuables was plain | 
 | simple stealing--and there was a command against that in the Bible. So | 
 | they inwardly resolved that so long as they remained in the business, | 
 | their piracies should not again be sullied with the crime of stealing. | 
 | Then conscience granted a truce, and these curiously inconsistent | 
 | pirates fell peacefully to sleep. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XIV | 
 |  | 
 | WHEN Tom awoke in the morning, he wondered where he was. He sat up and | 
 | rubbed his eyes and looked around. Then he comprehended. It was the | 
 | cool gray dawn, and there was a delicious sense of repose and peace in | 
 | the deep pervading calm and silence of the woods. Not a leaf stirred; | 
 | not a sound obtruded upon great Nature's meditation. Beaded dewdrops | 
 | stood upon the leaves and grasses. A white layer of ashes covered the | 
 | fire, and a thin blue breath of smoke rose straight into the air. Joe | 
 | and Huck still slept. | 
 |  | 
 | Now, far away in the woods a bird called; another answered; presently | 
 | the hammering of a woodpecker was heard. Gradually the cool dim gray of | 
 | the morning whitened, and as gradually sounds multiplied and life | 
 | manifested itself. The marvel of Nature shaking off sleep and going to | 
 | work unfolded itself to the musing boy. A little green worm came | 
 | crawling over a dewy leaf, lifting two-thirds of his body into the air | 
 | from time to time and "sniffing around," then proceeding again--for he | 
 | was measuring, Tom said; and when the worm approached him, of its own | 
 | accord, he sat as still as a stone, with his hopes rising and falling, | 
 | by turns, as the creature still came toward him or seemed inclined to | 
 | go elsewhere; and when at last it considered a painful moment with its | 
 | curved body in the air and then came decisively down upon Tom's leg and | 
 | began a journey over him, his whole heart was glad--for that meant that | 
 | he was going to have a new suit of clothes--without the shadow of a | 
 | doubt a gaudy piratical uniform. Now a procession of ants appeared, | 
 | from nowhere in particular, and went about their labors; one struggled | 
 | manfully by with a dead spider five times as big as itself in its arms, | 
 | and lugged it straight up a tree-trunk. A brown spotted lady-bug | 
 | climbed the dizzy height of a grass blade, and Tom bent down close to | 
 | it and said, "Lady-bug, lady-bug, fly away home, your house is on fire, | 
 | your children's alone," and she took wing and went off to see about it | 
 | --which did not surprise the boy, for he knew of old that this insect was | 
 | credulous about conflagrations, and he had practised upon its | 
 | simplicity more than once. A tumblebug came next, heaving sturdily at | 
 | its ball, and Tom touched the creature, to see it shut its legs against | 
 | its body and pretend to be dead. The birds were fairly rioting by this | 
 | time. A catbird, the Northern mocker, lit in a tree over Tom's head, | 
 | and trilled out her imitations of her neighbors in a rapture of | 
 | enjoyment; then a shrill jay swept down, a flash of blue flame, and | 
 | stopped on a twig almost within the boy's reach, cocked his head to one | 
 | side and eyed the strangers with a consuming curiosity; a gray squirrel | 
 | and a big fellow of the "fox" kind came skurrying along, sitting up at | 
 | intervals to inspect and chatter at the boys, for the wild things had | 
 | probably never seen a human being before and scarcely knew whether to | 
 | be afraid or not. All Nature was wide awake and stirring, now; long | 
 | lances of sunlight pierced down through the dense foliage far and near, | 
 | and a few butterflies came fluttering upon the scene. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom stirred up the other pirates and they all clattered away with a | 
 | shout, and in a minute or two were stripped and chasing after and | 
 | tumbling over each other in the shallow limpid water of the white | 
 | sandbar. They felt no longing for the little village sleeping in the | 
 | distance beyond the majestic waste of water. A vagrant current or a | 
 | slight rise in the river had carried off their raft, but this only | 
 | gratified them, since its going was something like burning the bridge | 
 | between them and civilization. | 
 |  | 
 | They came back to camp wonderfully refreshed, glad-hearted, and | 
 | ravenous; and they soon had the camp-fire blazing up again. Huck found | 
 | a spring of clear cold water close by, and the boys made cups of broad | 
 | oak or hickory leaves, and felt that water, sweetened with such a | 
 | wildwood charm as that, would be a good enough substitute for coffee. | 
 | While Joe was slicing bacon for breakfast, Tom and Huck asked him to | 
 | hold on a minute; they stepped to a promising nook in the river-bank | 
 | and threw in their lines; almost immediately they had reward. Joe had | 
 | not had time to get impatient before they were back again with some | 
 | handsome bass, a couple of sun-perch and a small catfish--provisions | 
 | enough for quite a family. They fried the fish with the bacon, and were | 
 | astonished; for no fish had ever seemed so delicious before. They did | 
 | not know that the quicker a fresh-water fish is on the fire after he is | 
 | caught the better he is; and they reflected little upon what a sauce | 
 | open-air sleeping, open-air exercise, bathing, and a large ingredient | 
 | of hunger make, too. | 
 |  | 
 | They lay around in the shade, after breakfast, while Huck had a smoke, | 
 | and then went off through the woods on an exploring expedition. They | 
 | tramped gayly along, over decaying logs, through tangled underbrush, | 
 | among solemn monarchs of the forest, hung from their crowns to the | 
 | ground with a drooping regalia of grape-vines. Now and then they came | 
 | upon snug nooks carpeted with grass and jeweled with flowers. | 
 |  | 
 | They found plenty of things to be delighted with, but nothing to be | 
 | astonished at. They discovered that the island was about three miles | 
 | long and a quarter of a mile wide, and that the shore it lay closest to | 
 | was only separated from it by a narrow channel hardly two hundred yards | 
 | wide. They took a swim about every hour, so it was close upon the | 
 | middle of the afternoon when they got back to camp. They were too | 
 | hungry to stop to fish, but they fared sumptuously upon cold ham, and | 
 | then threw themselves down in the shade to talk. But the talk soon | 
 | began to drag, and then died. The stillness, the solemnity that brooded | 
 | in the woods, and the sense of loneliness, began to tell upon the | 
 | spirits of the boys. They fell to thinking. A sort of undefined longing | 
 | crept upon them. This took dim shape, presently--it was budding | 
 | homesickness. Even Finn the Red-Handed was dreaming of his doorsteps | 
 | and empty hogsheads. But they were all ashamed of their weakness, and | 
 | none was brave enough to speak his thought. | 
 |  | 
 | For some time, now, the boys had been dully conscious of a peculiar | 
 | sound in the distance, just as one sometimes is of the ticking of a | 
 | clock which he takes no distinct note of. But now this mysterious sound | 
 | became more pronounced, and forced a recognition. The boys started, | 
 | glanced at each other, and then each assumed a listening attitude. | 
 | There was a long silence, profound and unbroken; then a deep, sullen | 
 | boom came floating down out of the distance. | 
 |  | 
 | "What is it!" exclaimed Joe, under his breath. | 
 |  | 
 | "I wonder," said Tom in a whisper. | 
 |  | 
 | "'Tain't thunder," said Huckleberry, in an awed tone, "becuz thunder--" | 
 |  | 
 | "Hark!" said Tom. "Listen--don't talk." | 
 |  | 
 | They waited a time that seemed an age, and then the same muffled boom | 
 | troubled the solemn hush. | 
 |  | 
 | "Let's go and see." | 
 |  | 
 | They sprang to their feet and hurried to the shore toward the town. | 
 | They parted the bushes on the bank and peered out over the water. The | 
 | little steam ferryboat was about a mile below the village, drifting | 
 | with the current. Her broad deck seemed crowded with people. There were | 
 | a great many skiffs rowing about or floating with the stream in the | 
 | neighborhood of the ferryboat, but the boys could not determine what | 
 | the men in them were doing. Presently a great jet of white smoke burst | 
 | from the ferryboat's side, and as it expanded and rose in a lazy cloud, | 
 | that same dull throb of sound was borne to the listeners again. | 
 |  | 
 | "I know now!" exclaimed Tom; "somebody's drownded!" | 
 |  | 
 | "That's it!" said Huck; "they done that last summer, when Bill Turner | 
 | got drownded; they shoot a cannon over the water, and that makes him | 
 | come up to the top. Yes, and they take loaves of bread and put | 
 | quicksilver in 'em and set 'em afloat, and wherever there's anybody | 
 | that's drownded, they'll float right there and stop." | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, I've heard about that," said Joe. "I wonder what makes the bread | 
 | do that." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, it ain't the bread, so much," said Tom; "I reckon it's mostly | 
 | what they SAY over it before they start it out." | 
 |  | 
 | "But they don't say anything over it," said Huck. "I've seen 'em and | 
 | they don't." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, that's funny," said Tom. "But maybe they say it to themselves. | 
 | Of COURSE they do. Anybody might know that." | 
 |  | 
 | The other boys agreed that there was reason in what Tom said, because | 
 | an ignorant lump of bread, uninstructed by an incantation, could not be | 
 | expected to act very intelligently when set upon an errand of such | 
 | gravity. | 
 |  | 
 | "By jings, I wish I was over there, now," said Joe. | 
 |  | 
 | "I do too" said Huck "I'd give heaps to know who it is." | 
 |  | 
 | The boys still listened and watched. Presently a revealing thought | 
 | flashed through Tom's mind, and he exclaimed: | 
 |  | 
 | "Boys, I know who's drownded--it's us!" | 
 |  | 
 | They felt like heroes in an instant. Here was a gorgeous triumph; they | 
 | were missed; they were mourned; hearts were breaking on their account; | 
 | tears were being shed; accusing memories of unkindness to these poor | 
 | lost lads were rising up, and unavailing regrets and remorse were being | 
 | indulged; and best of all, the departed were the talk of the whole | 
 | town, and the envy of all the boys, as far as this dazzling notoriety | 
 | was concerned. This was fine. It was worth while to be a pirate, after | 
 | all. | 
 |  | 
 | As twilight drew on, the ferryboat went back to her accustomed | 
 | business and the skiffs disappeared. The pirates returned to camp. They | 
 | were jubilant with vanity over their new grandeur and the illustrious | 
 | trouble they were making. They caught fish, cooked supper and ate it, | 
 | and then fell to guessing at what the village was thinking and saying | 
 | about them; and the pictures they drew of the public distress on their | 
 | account were gratifying to look upon--from their point of view. But | 
 | when the shadows of night closed them in, they gradually ceased to | 
 | talk, and sat gazing into the fire, with their minds evidently | 
 | wandering elsewhere. The excitement was gone, now, and Tom and Joe | 
 | could not keep back thoughts of certain persons at home who were not | 
 | enjoying this fine frolic as much as they were. Misgivings came; they | 
 | grew troubled and unhappy; a sigh or two escaped, unawares. By and by | 
 | Joe timidly ventured upon a roundabout "feeler" as to how the others | 
 | might look upon a return to civilization--not right now, but-- | 
 |  | 
 | Tom withered him with derision! Huck, being uncommitted as yet, joined | 
 | in with Tom, and the waverer quickly "explained," and was glad to get | 
 | out of the scrape with as little taint of chicken-hearted homesickness | 
 | clinging to his garments as he could. Mutiny was effectually laid to | 
 | rest for the moment. | 
 |  | 
 | As the night deepened, Huck began to nod, and presently to snore. Joe | 
 | followed next. Tom lay upon his elbow motionless, for some time, | 
 | watching the two intently. At last he got up cautiously, on his knees, | 
 | and went searching among the grass and the flickering reflections flung | 
 | by the camp-fire. He picked up and inspected several large | 
 | semi-cylinders of the thin white bark of a sycamore, and finally chose | 
 | two which seemed to suit him. Then he knelt by the fire and painfully | 
 | wrote something upon each of these with his "red keel"; one he rolled up | 
 | and put in his jacket pocket, and the other he put in Joe's hat and | 
 | removed it to a little distance from the owner. And he also put into the | 
 | hat certain schoolboy treasures of almost inestimable value--among them | 
 | a lump of chalk, an India-rubber ball, three fishhooks, and one of that | 
 | kind of marbles known as a "sure 'nough crystal." Then he tiptoed his | 
 | way cautiously among the trees till he felt that he was out of hearing, | 
 | and straightway broke into a keen run in the direction of the sandbar. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XV | 
 |  | 
 | A FEW minutes later Tom was in the shoal water of the bar, wading | 
 | toward the Illinois shore. Before the depth reached his middle he was | 
 | half-way over; the current would permit no more wading, now, so he | 
 | struck out confidently to swim the remaining hundred yards. He swam | 
 | quartering upstream, but still was swept downward rather faster than he | 
 | had expected. However, he reached the shore finally, and drifted along | 
 | till he found a low place and drew himself out. He put his hand on his | 
 | jacket pocket, found his piece of bark safe, and then struck through | 
 | the woods, following the shore, with streaming garments. Shortly before | 
 | ten o'clock he came out into an open place opposite the village, and | 
 | saw the ferryboat lying in the shadow of the trees and the high bank. | 
 | Everything was quiet under the blinking stars. He crept down the bank, | 
 | watching with all his eyes, slipped into the water, swam three or four | 
 | strokes and climbed into the skiff that did "yawl" duty at the boat's | 
 | stern. He laid himself down under the thwarts and waited, panting. | 
 |  | 
 | Presently the cracked bell tapped and a voice gave the order to "cast | 
 | off." A minute or two later the skiff's head was standing high up, | 
 | against the boat's swell, and the voyage was begun. Tom felt happy in | 
 | his success, for he knew it was the boat's last trip for the night. At | 
 | the end of a long twelve or fifteen minutes the wheels stopped, and Tom | 
 | slipped overboard and swam ashore in the dusk, landing fifty yards | 
 | downstream, out of danger of possible stragglers. | 
 |  | 
 | He flew along unfrequented alleys, and shortly found himself at his | 
 | aunt's back fence. He climbed over, approached the "ell," and looked in | 
 | at the sitting-room window, for a light was burning there. There sat | 
 | Aunt Polly, Sid, Mary, and Joe Harper's mother, grouped together, | 
 | talking. They were by the bed, and the bed was between them and the | 
 | door. Tom went to the door and began to softly lift the latch; then he | 
 | pressed gently and the door yielded a crack; he continued pushing | 
 | cautiously, and quaking every time it creaked, till he judged he might | 
 | squeeze through on his knees; so he put his head through and began, | 
 | warily. | 
 |  | 
 | "What makes the candle blow so?" said Aunt Polly. Tom hurried up. | 
 | "Why, that door's open, I believe. Why, of course it is. No end of | 
 | strange things now. Go 'long and shut it, Sid." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom disappeared under the bed just in time. He lay and "breathed" | 
 | himself for a time, and then crept to where he could almost touch his | 
 | aunt's foot. | 
 |  | 
 | "But as I was saying," said Aunt Polly, "he warn't BAD, so to say | 
 | --only mischEEvous. Only just giddy, and harum-scarum, you know. He | 
 | warn't any more responsible than a colt. HE never meant any harm, and | 
 | he was the best-hearted boy that ever was"--and she began to cry. | 
 |  | 
 | "It was just so with my Joe--always full of his devilment, and up to | 
 | every kind of mischief, but he was just as unselfish and kind as he | 
 | could be--and laws bless me, to think I went and whipped him for taking | 
 | that cream, never once recollecting that I throwed it out myself | 
 | because it was sour, and I never to see him again in this world, never, | 
 | never, never, poor abused boy!" And Mrs. Harper sobbed as if her heart | 
 | would break. | 
 |  | 
 | "I hope Tom's better off where he is," said Sid, "but if he'd been | 
 | better in some ways--" | 
 |  | 
 | "SID!" Tom felt the glare of the old lady's eye, though he could not | 
 | see it. "Not a word against my Tom, now that he's gone! God'll take | 
 | care of HIM--never you trouble YOURself, sir! Oh, Mrs. Harper, I don't | 
 | know how to give him up! I don't know how to give him up! He was such a | 
 | comfort to me, although he tormented my old heart out of me, 'most." | 
 |  | 
 | "The Lord giveth and the Lord hath taken away--Blessed be the name of | 
 | the Lord! But it's so hard--Oh, it's so hard! Only last Saturday my | 
 | Joe busted a firecracker right under my nose and I knocked him | 
 | sprawling. Little did I know then, how soon--Oh, if it was to do over | 
 | again I'd hug him and bless him for it." | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, yes, yes, I know just how you feel, Mrs. Harper, I know just | 
 | exactly how you feel. No longer ago than yesterday noon, my Tom took | 
 | and filled the cat full of Pain-killer, and I did think the cretur | 
 | would tear the house down. And God forgive me, I cracked Tom's head | 
 | with my thimble, poor boy, poor dead boy. But he's out of all his | 
 | troubles now. And the last words I ever heard him say was to reproach--" | 
 |  | 
 | But this memory was too much for the old lady, and she broke entirely | 
 | down. Tom was snuffling, now, himself--and more in pity of himself than | 
 | anybody else. He could hear Mary crying, and putting in a kindly word | 
 | for him from time to time. He began to have a nobler opinion of himself | 
 | than ever before. Still, he was sufficiently touched by his aunt's | 
 | grief to long to rush out from under the bed and overwhelm her with | 
 | joy--and the theatrical gorgeousness of the thing appealed strongly to | 
 | his nature, too, but he resisted and lay still. | 
 |  | 
 | He went on listening, and gathered by odds and ends that it was | 
 | conjectured at first that the boys had got drowned while taking a swim; | 
 | then the small raft had been missed; next, certain boys said the | 
 | missing lads had promised that the village should "hear something" | 
 | soon; the wise-heads had "put this and that together" and decided that | 
 | the lads had gone off on that raft and would turn up at the next town | 
 | below, presently; but toward noon the raft had been found, lodged | 
 | against the Missouri shore some five or six miles below the village | 
 | --and then hope perished; they must be drowned, else hunger would have | 
 | driven them home by nightfall if not sooner. It was believed that the | 
 | search for the bodies had been a fruitless effort merely because the | 
 | drowning must have occurred in mid-channel, since the boys, being good | 
 | swimmers, would otherwise have escaped to shore. This was Wednesday | 
 | night. If the bodies continued missing until Sunday, all hope would be | 
 | given over, and the funerals would be preached on that morning. Tom | 
 | shuddered. | 
 |  | 
 | Mrs. Harper gave a sobbing good-night and turned to go. Then with a | 
 | mutual impulse the two bereaved women flung themselves into each | 
 | other's arms and had a good, consoling cry, and then parted. Aunt Polly | 
 | was tender far beyond her wont, in her good-night to Sid and Mary. Sid | 
 | snuffled a bit and Mary went off crying with all her heart. | 
 |  | 
 | Aunt Polly knelt down and prayed for Tom so touchingly, so | 
 | appealingly, and with such measureless love in her words and her old | 
 | trembling voice, that he was weltering in tears again, long before she | 
 | was through. | 
 |  | 
 | He had to keep still long after she went to bed, for she kept making | 
 | broken-hearted ejaculations from time to time, tossing unrestfully, and | 
 | turning over. But at last she was still, only moaning a little in her | 
 | sleep. Now the boy stole out, rose gradually by the bedside, shaded the | 
 | candle-light with his hand, and stood regarding her. His heart was full | 
 | of pity for her. He took out his sycamore scroll and placed it by the | 
 | candle. But something occurred to him, and he lingered considering. His | 
 | face lighted with a happy solution of his thought; he put the bark | 
 | hastily in his pocket. Then he bent over and kissed the faded lips, and | 
 | straightway made his stealthy exit, latching the door behind him. | 
 |  | 
 | He threaded his way back to the ferry landing, found nobody at large | 
 | there, and walked boldly on board the boat, for he knew she was | 
 | tenantless except that there was a watchman, who always turned in and | 
 | slept like a graven image. He untied the skiff at the stern, slipped | 
 | into it, and was soon rowing cautiously upstream. When he had pulled a | 
 | mile above the village, he started quartering across and bent himself | 
 | stoutly to his work. He hit the landing on the other side neatly, for | 
 | this was a familiar bit of work to him. He was moved to capture the | 
 | skiff, arguing that it might be considered a ship and therefore | 
 | legitimate prey for a pirate, but he knew a thorough search would be | 
 | made for it and that might end in revelations. So he stepped ashore and | 
 | entered the woods. | 
 |  | 
 | He sat down and took a long rest, torturing himself meanwhile to keep | 
 | awake, and then started warily down the home-stretch. The night was far | 
 | spent. It was broad daylight before he found himself fairly abreast the | 
 | island bar. He rested again until the sun was well up and gilding the | 
 | great river with its splendor, and then he plunged into the stream. A | 
 | little later he paused, dripping, upon the threshold of the camp, and | 
 | heard Joe say: | 
 |  | 
 | "No, Tom's true-blue, Huck, and he'll come back. He won't desert. He | 
 | knows that would be a disgrace to a pirate, and Tom's too proud for | 
 | that sort of thing. He's up to something or other. Now I wonder what?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, the things is ours, anyway, ain't they?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Pretty near, but not yet, Huck. The writing says they are if he ain't | 
 | back here to breakfast." | 
 |  | 
 | "Which he is!" exclaimed Tom, with fine dramatic effect, stepping | 
 | grandly into camp. | 
 |  | 
 | A sumptuous breakfast of bacon and fish was shortly provided, and as | 
 | the boys set to work upon it, Tom recounted (and adorned) his | 
 | adventures. They were a vain and boastful company of heroes when the | 
 | tale was done. Then Tom hid himself away in a shady nook to sleep till | 
 | noon, and the other pirates got ready to fish and explore. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XVI | 
 |  | 
 | AFTER dinner all the gang turned out to hunt for turtle eggs on the | 
 | bar. They went about poking sticks into the sand, and when they found a | 
 | soft place they went down on their knees and dug with their hands. | 
 | Sometimes they would take fifty or sixty eggs out of one hole. They | 
 | were perfectly round white things a trifle smaller than an English | 
 | walnut. They had a famous fried-egg feast that night, and another on | 
 | Friday morning. | 
 |  | 
 | After breakfast they went whooping and prancing out on the bar, and | 
 | chased each other round and round, shedding clothes as they went, until | 
 | they were naked, and then continued the frolic far away up the shoal | 
 | water of the bar, against the stiff current, which latter tripped their | 
 | legs from under them from time to time and greatly increased the fun. | 
 | And now and then they stooped in a group and splashed water in each | 
 | other's faces with their palms, gradually approaching each other, with | 
 | averted faces to avoid the strangling sprays, and finally gripping and | 
 | struggling till the best man ducked his neighbor, and then they all | 
 | went under in a tangle of white legs and arms and came up blowing, | 
 | sputtering, laughing, and gasping for breath at one and the same time. | 
 |  | 
 | When they were well exhausted, they would run out and sprawl on the | 
 | dry, hot sand, and lie there and cover themselves up with it, and by | 
 | and by break for the water again and go through the original | 
 | performance once more. Finally it occurred to them that their naked | 
 | skin represented flesh-colored "tights" very fairly; so they drew a | 
 | ring in the sand and had a circus--with three clowns in it, for none | 
 | would yield this proudest post to his neighbor. | 
 |  | 
 | Next they got their marbles and played "knucks" and "ring-taw" and | 
 | "keeps" till that amusement grew stale. Then Joe and Huck had another | 
 | swim, but Tom would not venture, because he found that in kicking off | 
 | his trousers he had kicked his string of rattlesnake rattles off his | 
 | ankle, and he wondered how he had escaped cramp so long without the | 
 | protection of this mysterious charm. He did not venture again until he | 
 | had found it, and by that time the other boys were tired and ready to | 
 | rest. They gradually wandered apart, dropped into the "dumps," and fell | 
 | to gazing longingly across the wide river to where the village lay | 
 | drowsing in the sun. Tom found himself writing "BECKY" in the sand with | 
 | his big toe; he scratched it out, and was angry with himself for his | 
 | weakness. But he wrote it again, nevertheless; he could not help it. He | 
 | erased it once more and then took himself out of temptation by driving | 
 | the other boys together and joining them. | 
 |  | 
 | But Joe's spirits had gone down almost beyond resurrection. He was so | 
 | homesick that he could hardly endure the misery of it. The tears lay | 
 | very near the surface. Huck was melancholy, too. Tom was downhearted, | 
 | but tried hard not to show it. He had a secret which he was not ready | 
 | to tell, yet, but if this mutinous depression was not broken up soon, | 
 | he would have to bring it out. He said, with a great show of | 
 | cheerfulness: | 
 |  | 
 | "I bet there's been pirates on this island before, boys. We'll explore | 
 | it again. They've hid treasures here somewhere. How'd you feel to light | 
 | on a rotten chest full of gold and silver--hey?" | 
 |  | 
 | But it roused only faint enthusiasm, which faded out, with no reply. | 
 | Tom tried one or two other seductions; but they failed, too. It was | 
 | discouraging work. Joe sat poking up the sand with a stick and looking | 
 | very gloomy. Finally he said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, boys, let's give it up. I want to go home. It's so lonesome." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh no, Joe, you'll feel better by and by," said Tom. "Just think of | 
 | the fishing that's here." | 
 |  | 
 | "I don't care for fishing. I want to go home." | 
 |  | 
 | "But, Joe, there ain't such another swimming-place anywhere." | 
 |  | 
 | "Swimming's no good. I don't seem to care for it, somehow, when there | 
 | ain't anybody to say I sha'n't go in. I mean to go home." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, shucks! Baby! You want to see your mother, I reckon." | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, I DO want to see my mother--and you would, too, if you had one. | 
 | I ain't any more baby than you are." And Joe snuffled a little. | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, we'll let the cry-baby go home to his mother, won't we, Huck? | 
 | Poor thing--does it want to see its mother? And so it shall. You like | 
 | it here, don't you, Huck? We'll stay, won't we?" | 
 |  | 
 | Huck said, "Y-e-s"--without any heart in it. | 
 |  | 
 | "I'll never speak to you again as long as I live," said Joe, rising. | 
 | "There now!" And he moved moodily away and began to dress himself. | 
 |  | 
 | "Who cares!" said Tom. "Nobody wants you to. Go 'long home and get | 
 | laughed at. Oh, you're a nice pirate. Huck and me ain't cry-babies. | 
 | We'll stay, won't we, Huck? Let him go if he wants to. I reckon we can | 
 | get along without him, per'aps." | 
 |  | 
 | But Tom was uneasy, nevertheless, and was alarmed to see Joe go | 
 | sullenly on with his dressing. And then it was discomforting to see | 
 | Huck eying Joe's preparations so wistfully, and keeping up such an | 
 | ominous silence. Presently, without a parting word, Joe began to wade | 
 | off toward the Illinois shore. Tom's heart began to sink. He glanced at | 
 | Huck. Huck could not bear the look, and dropped his eyes. Then he said: | 
 |  | 
 | "I want to go, too, Tom. It was getting so lonesome anyway, and now | 
 | it'll be worse. Let's us go, too, Tom." | 
 |  | 
 | "I won't! You can all go, if you want to. I mean to stay." | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, I better go." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, go 'long--who's hendering you." | 
 |  | 
 | Huck began to pick up his scattered clothes. He said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, I wisht you'd come, too. Now you think it over. We'll wait for | 
 | you when we get to shore." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, you'll wait a blame long time, that's all." | 
 |  | 
 | Huck started sorrowfully away, and Tom stood looking after him, with a | 
 | strong desire tugging at his heart to yield his pride and go along too. | 
 | He hoped the boys would stop, but they still waded slowly on. It | 
 | suddenly dawned on Tom that it was become very lonely and still. He | 
 | made one final struggle with his pride, and then darted after his | 
 | comrades, yelling: | 
 |  | 
 | "Wait! Wait! I want to tell you something!" | 
 |  | 
 | They presently stopped and turned around. When he got to where they | 
 | were, he began unfolding his secret, and they listened moodily till at | 
 | last they saw the "point" he was driving at, and then they set up a | 
 | war-whoop of applause and said it was "splendid!" and said if he had | 
 | told them at first, they wouldn't have started away. He made a plausible | 
 | excuse; but his real reason had been the fear that not even the secret | 
 | would keep them with him any very great length of time, and so he had | 
 | meant to hold it in reserve as a last seduction. | 
 |  | 
 | The lads came gayly back and went at their sports again with a will, | 
 | chattering all the time about Tom's stupendous plan and admiring the | 
 | genius of it. After a dainty egg and fish dinner, Tom said he wanted to | 
 | learn to smoke, now. Joe caught at the idea and said he would like to | 
 | try, too. So Huck made pipes and filled them. These novices had never | 
 | smoked anything before but cigars made of grape-vine, and they "bit" | 
 | the tongue, and were not considered manly anyway. | 
 |  | 
 | Now they stretched themselves out on their elbows and began to puff, | 
 | charily, and with slender confidence. The smoke had an unpleasant | 
 | taste, and they gagged a little, but Tom said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, it's just as easy! If I'd a knowed this was all, I'd a learnt | 
 | long ago." | 
 |  | 
 | "So would I," said Joe. "It's just nothing." | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, many a time I've looked at people smoking, and thought well I | 
 | wish I could do that; but I never thought I could," said Tom. | 
 |  | 
 | "That's just the way with me, hain't it, Huck? You've heard me talk | 
 | just that way--haven't you, Huck? I'll leave it to Huck if I haven't." | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes--heaps of times," said Huck. | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I have too," said Tom; "oh, hundreds of times. Once down by the | 
 | slaughter-house. Don't you remember, Huck? Bob Tanner was there, and | 
 | Johnny Miller, and Jeff Thatcher, when I said it. Don't you remember, | 
 | Huck, 'bout me saying that?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, that's so," said Huck. "That was the day after I lost a white | 
 | alley. No, 'twas the day before." | 
 |  | 
 | "There--I told you so," said Tom. "Huck recollects it." | 
 |  | 
 | "I bleeve I could smoke this pipe all day," said Joe. "I don't feel | 
 | sick." | 
 |  | 
 | "Neither do I," said Tom. "I could smoke it all day. But I bet you | 
 | Jeff Thatcher couldn't." | 
 |  | 
 | "Jeff Thatcher! Why, he'd keel over just with two draws. Just let him | 
 | try it once. HE'D see!" | 
 |  | 
 | "I bet he would. And Johnny Miller--I wish could see Johnny Miller | 
 | tackle it once." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, don't I!" said Joe. "Why, I bet you Johnny Miller couldn't any | 
 | more do this than nothing. Just one little snifter would fetch HIM." | 
 |  | 
 | "'Deed it would, Joe. Say--I wish the boys could see us now." | 
 |  | 
 | "So do I." | 
 |  | 
 | "Say--boys, don't say anything about it, and some time when they're | 
 | around, I'll come up to you and say, 'Joe, got a pipe? I want a smoke.' | 
 | And you'll say, kind of careless like, as if it warn't anything, you'll | 
 | say, 'Yes, I got my OLD pipe, and another one, but my tobacker ain't | 
 | very good.' And I'll say, 'Oh, that's all right, if it's STRONG | 
 | enough.' And then you'll out with the pipes, and we'll light up just as | 
 | ca'm, and then just see 'em look!" | 
 |  | 
 | "By jings, that'll be gay, Tom! I wish it was NOW!" | 
 |  | 
 | "So do I! And when we tell 'em we learned when we was off pirating, | 
 | won't they wish they'd been along?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, I reckon not! I'll just BET they will!" | 
 |  | 
 | So the talk ran on. But presently it began to flag a trifle, and grow | 
 | disjointed. The silences widened; the expectoration marvellously | 
 | increased. Every pore inside the boys' cheeks became a spouting | 
 | fountain; they could scarcely bail out the cellars under their tongues | 
 | fast enough to prevent an inundation; little overflowings down their | 
 | throats occurred in spite of all they could do, and sudden retchings | 
 | followed every time. Both boys were looking very pale and miserable, | 
 | now. Joe's pipe dropped from his nerveless fingers. Tom's followed. | 
 | Both fountains were going furiously and both pumps bailing with might | 
 | and main. Joe said feebly: | 
 |  | 
 | "I've lost my knife. I reckon I better go and find it." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom said, with quivering lips and halting utterance: | 
 |  | 
 | "I'll help you. You go over that way and I'll hunt around by the | 
 | spring. No, you needn't come, Huck--we can find it." | 
 |  | 
 | So Huck sat down again, and waited an hour. Then he found it lonesome, | 
 | and went to find his comrades. They were wide apart in the woods, both | 
 | very pale, both fast asleep. But something informed him that if they | 
 | had had any trouble they had got rid of it. | 
 |  | 
 | They were not talkative at supper that night. They had a humble look, | 
 | and when Huck prepared his pipe after the meal and was going to prepare | 
 | theirs, they said no, they were not feeling very well--something they | 
 | ate at dinner had disagreed with them. | 
 |  | 
 | About midnight Joe awoke, and called the boys. There was a brooding | 
 | oppressiveness in the air that seemed to bode something. The boys | 
 | huddled themselves together and sought the friendly companionship of | 
 | the fire, though the dull dead heat of the breathless atmosphere was | 
 | stifling. They sat still, intent and waiting. The solemn hush | 
 | continued. Beyond the light of the fire everything was swallowed up in | 
 | the blackness of darkness. Presently there came a quivering glow that | 
 | vaguely revealed the foliage for a moment and then vanished. By and by | 
 | another came, a little stronger. Then another. Then a faint moan came | 
 | sighing through the branches of the forest and the boys felt a fleeting | 
 | breath upon their cheeks, and shuddered with the fancy that the Spirit | 
 | of the Night had gone by. There was a pause. Now a weird flash turned | 
 | night into day and showed every little grass-blade, separate and | 
 | distinct, that grew about their feet. And it showed three white, | 
 | startled faces, too. A deep peal of thunder went rolling and tumbling | 
 | down the heavens and lost itself in sullen rumblings in the distance. A | 
 | sweep of chilly air passed by, rustling all the leaves and snowing the | 
 | flaky ashes broadcast about the fire. Another fierce glare lit up the | 
 | forest and an instant crash followed that seemed to rend the tree-tops | 
 | right over the boys' heads. They clung together in terror, in the thick | 
 | gloom that followed. A few big rain-drops fell pattering upon the | 
 | leaves. | 
 |  | 
 | "Quick! boys, go for the tent!" exclaimed Tom. | 
 |  | 
 | They sprang away, stumbling over roots and among vines in the dark, no | 
 | two plunging in the same direction. A furious blast roared through the | 
 | trees, making everything sing as it went. One blinding flash after | 
 | another came, and peal on peal of deafening thunder. And now a | 
 | drenching rain poured down and the rising hurricane drove it in sheets | 
 | along the ground. The boys cried out to each other, but the roaring | 
 | wind and the booming thunder-blasts drowned their voices utterly. | 
 | However, one by one they straggled in at last and took shelter under | 
 | the tent, cold, scared, and streaming with water; but to have company | 
 | in misery seemed something to be grateful for. They could not talk, the | 
 | old sail flapped so furiously, even if the other noises would have | 
 | allowed them. The tempest rose higher and higher, and presently the | 
 | sail tore loose from its fastenings and went winging away on the blast. | 
 | The boys seized each others' hands and fled, with many tumblings and | 
 | bruises, to the shelter of a great oak that stood upon the river-bank. | 
 | Now the battle was at its highest. Under the ceaseless conflagration of | 
 | lightning that flamed in the skies, everything below stood out in | 
 | clean-cut and shadowless distinctness: the bending trees, the billowy | 
 | river, white with foam, the driving spray of spume-flakes, the dim | 
 | outlines of the high bluffs on the other side, glimpsed through the | 
 | drifting cloud-rack and the slanting veil of rain. Every little while | 
 | some giant tree yielded the fight and fell crashing through the younger | 
 | growth; and the unflagging thunder-peals came now in ear-splitting | 
 | explosive bursts, keen and sharp, and unspeakably appalling. The storm | 
 | culminated in one matchless effort that seemed likely to tear the island | 
 | to pieces, burn it up, drown it to the tree-tops, blow it away, and | 
 | deafen every creature in it, all at one and the same moment. It was a | 
 | wild night for homeless young heads to be out in. | 
 |  | 
 | But at last the battle was done, and the forces retired with weaker | 
 | and weaker threatenings and grumblings, and peace resumed her sway. The | 
 | boys went back to camp, a good deal awed; but they found there was | 
 | still something to be thankful for, because the great sycamore, the | 
 | shelter of their beds, was a ruin, now, blasted by the lightnings, and | 
 | they were not under it when the catastrophe happened. | 
 |  | 
 | Everything in camp was drenched, the camp-fire as well; for they were | 
 | but heedless lads, like their generation, and had made no provision | 
 | against rain. Here was matter for dismay, for they were soaked through | 
 | and chilled. They were eloquent in their distress; but they presently | 
 | discovered that the fire had eaten so far up under the great log it had | 
 | been built against (where it curved upward and separated itself from | 
 | the ground), that a handbreadth or so of it had escaped wetting; so | 
 | they patiently wrought until, with shreds and bark gathered from the | 
 | under sides of sheltered logs, they coaxed the fire to burn again. Then | 
 | they piled on great dead boughs till they had a roaring furnace, and | 
 | were glad-hearted once more. They dried their boiled ham and had a | 
 | feast, and after that they sat by the fire and expanded and glorified | 
 | their midnight adventure until morning, for there was not a dry spot to | 
 | sleep on, anywhere around. | 
 |  | 
 | As the sun began to steal in upon the boys, drowsiness came over them, | 
 | and they went out on the sandbar and lay down to sleep. They got | 
 | scorched out by and by, and drearily set about getting breakfast. After | 
 | the meal they felt rusty, and stiff-jointed, and a little homesick once | 
 | more. Tom saw the signs, and fell to cheering up the pirates as well as | 
 | he could. But they cared nothing for marbles, or circus, or swimming, | 
 | or anything. He reminded them of the imposing secret, and raised a ray | 
 | of cheer. While it lasted, he got them interested in a new device. This | 
 | was to knock off being pirates, for a while, and be Indians for a | 
 | change. They were attracted by this idea; so it was not long before | 
 | they were stripped, and striped from head to heel with black mud, like | 
 | so many zebras--all of them chiefs, of course--and then they went | 
 | tearing through the woods to attack an English settlement. | 
 |  | 
 | By and by they separated into three hostile tribes, and darted upon | 
 | each other from ambush with dreadful war-whoops, and killed and scalped | 
 | each other by thousands. It was a gory day. Consequently it was an | 
 | extremely satisfactory one. | 
 |  | 
 | They assembled in camp toward supper-time, hungry and happy; but now a | 
 | difficulty arose--hostile Indians could not break the bread of | 
 | hospitality together without first making peace, and this was a simple | 
 | impossibility without smoking a pipe of peace. There was no other | 
 | process that ever they had heard of. Two of the savages almost wished | 
 | they had remained pirates. However, there was no other way; so with | 
 | such show of cheerfulness as they could muster they called for the pipe | 
 | and took their whiff as it passed, in due form. | 
 |  | 
 | And behold, they were glad they had gone into savagery, for they had | 
 | gained something; they found that they could now smoke a little without | 
 | having to go and hunt for a lost knife; they did not get sick enough to | 
 | be seriously uncomfortable. They were not likely to fool away this high | 
 | promise for lack of effort. No, they practised cautiously, after | 
 | supper, with right fair success, and so they spent a jubilant evening. | 
 | They were prouder and happier in their new acquirement than they would | 
 | have been in the scalping and skinning of the Six Nations. We will | 
 | leave them to smoke and chatter and brag, since we have no further use | 
 | for them at present. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XVII | 
 |  | 
 | BUT there was no hilarity in the little town that same tranquil | 
 | Saturday afternoon. The Harpers, and Aunt Polly's family, were being | 
 | put into mourning, with great grief and many tears. An unusual quiet | 
 | possessed the village, although it was ordinarily quiet enough, in all | 
 | conscience. The villagers conducted their concerns with an absent air, | 
 | and talked little; but they sighed often. The Saturday holiday seemed a | 
 | burden to the children. They had no heart in their sports, and | 
 | gradually gave them up. | 
 |  | 
 | In the afternoon Becky Thatcher found herself moping about the | 
 | deserted schoolhouse yard, and feeling very melancholy. But she found | 
 | nothing there to comfort her. She soliloquized: | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, if I only had a brass andiron-knob again! But I haven't got | 
 | anything now to remember him by." And she choked back a little sob. | 
 |  | 
 | Presently she stopped, and said to herself: | 
 |  | 
 | "It was right here. Oh, if it was to do over again, I wouldn't say | 
 | that--I wouldn't say it for the whole world. But he's gone now; I'll | 
 | never, never, never see him any more." | 
 |  | 
 | This thought broke her down, and she wandered away, with tears rolling | 
 | down her cheeks. Then quite a group of boys and girls--playmates of | 
 | Tom's and Joe's--came by, and stood looking over the paling fence and | 
 | talking in reverent tones of how Tom did so-and-so the last time they | 
 | saw him, and how Joe said this and that small trifle (pregnant with | 
 | awful prophecy, as they could easily see now!)--and each speaker | 
 | pointed out the exact spot where the lost lads stood at the time, and | 
 | then added something like "and I was a-standing just so--just as I am | 
 | now, and as if you was him--I was as close as that--and he smiled, just | 
 | this way--and then something seemed to go all over me, like--awful, you | 
 | know--and I never thought what it meant, of course, but I can see now!" | 
 |  | 
 | Then there was a dispute about who saw the dead boys last in life, and | 
 | many claimed that dismal distinction, and offered evidences, more or | 
 | less tampered with by the witness; and when it was ultimately decided | 
 | who DID see the departed last, and exchanged the last words with them, | 
 | the lucky parties took upon themselves a sort of sacred importance, and | 
 | were gaped at and envied by all the rest. One poor chap, who had no | 
 | other grandeur to offer, said with tolerably manifest pride in the | 
 | remembrance: | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, Tom Sawyer he licked me once." | 
 |  | 
 | But that bid for glory was a failure. Most of the boys could say that, | 
 | and so that cheapened the distinction too much. The group loitered | 
 | away, still recalling memories of the lost heroes, in awed voices. | 
 |  | 
 | When the Sunday-school hour was finished, the next morning, the bell | 
 | began to toll, instead of ringing in the usual way. It was a very still | 
 | Sabbath, and the mournful sound seemed in keeping with the musing hush | 
 | that lay upon nature. The villagers began to gather, loitering a moment | 
 | in the vestibule to converse in whispers about the sad event. But there | 
 | was no whispering in the house; only the funereal rustling of dresses | 
 | as the women gathered to their seats disturbed the silence there. None | 
 | could remember when the little church had been so full before. There | 
 | was finally a waiting pause, an expectant dumbness, and then Aunt Polly | 
 | entered, followed by Sid and Mary, and they by the Harper family, all | 
 | in deep black, and the whole congregation, the old minister as well, | 
 | rose reverently and stood until the mourners were seated in the front | 
 | pew. There was another communing silence, broken at intervals by | 
 | muffled sobs, and then the minister spread his hands abroad and prayed. | 
 | A moving hymn was sung, and the text followed: "I am the Resurrection | 
 | and the Life." | 
 |  | 
 | As the service proceeded, the clergyman drew such pictures of the | 
 | graces, the winning ways, and the rare promise of the lost lads that | 
 | every soul there, thinking he recognized these pictures, felt a pang in | 
 | remembering that he had persistently blinded himself to them always | 
 | before, and had as persistently seen only faults and flaws in the poor | 
 | boys. The minister related many a touching incident in the lives of the | 
 | departed, too, which illustrated their sweet, generous natures, and the | 
 | people could easily see, now, how noble and beautiful those episodes | 
 | were, and remembered with grief that at the time they occurred they had | 
 | seemed rank rascalities, well deserving of the cowhide. The | 
 | congregation became more and more moved, as the pathetic tale went on, | 
 | till at last the whole company broke down and joined the weeping | 
 | mourners in a chorus of anguished sobs, the preacher himself giving way | 
 | to his feelings, and crying in the pulpit. | 
 |  | 
 | There was a rustle in the gallery, which nobody noticed; a moment | 
 | later the church door creaked; the minister raised his streaming eyes | 
 | above his handkerchief, and stood transfixed! First one and then | 
 | another pair of eyes followed the minister's, and then almost with one | 
 | impulse the congregation rose and stared while the three dead boys came | 
 | marching up the aisle, Tom in the lead, Joe next, and Huck, a ruin of | 
 | drooping rags, sneaking sheepishly in the rear! They had been hid in | 
 | the unused gallery listening to their own funeral sermon! | 
 |  | 
 | Aunt Polly, Mary, and the Harpers threw themselves upon their restored | 
 | ones, smothered them with kisses and poured out thanksgivings, while | 
 | poor Huck stood abashed and uncomfortable, not knowing exactly what to | 
 | do or where to hide from so many unwelcoming eyes. He wavered, and | 
 | started to slink away, but Tom seized him and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Aunt Polly, it ain't fair. Somebody's got to be glad to see Huck." | 
 |  | 
 | "And so they shall. I'm glad to see him, poor motherless thing!" And | 
 | the loving attentions Aunt Polly lavished upon him were the one thing | 
 | capable of making him more uncomfortable than he was before. | 
 |  | 
 | Suddenly the minister shouted at the top of his voice: "Praise God | 
 | from whom all blessings flow--SING!--and put your hearts in it!" | 
 |  | 
 | And they did. Old Hundred swelled up with a triumphant burst, and | 
 | while it shook the rafters Tom Sawyer the Pirate looked around upon the | 
 | envying juveniles about him and confessed in his heart that this was | 
 | the proudest moment of his life. | 
 |  | 
 | As the "sold" congregation trooped out they said they would almost be | 
 | willing to be made ridiculous again to hear Old Hundred sung like that | 
 | once more. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom got more cuffs and kisses that day--according to Aunt Polly's | 
 | varying moods--than he had earned before in a year; and he hardly knew | 
 | which expressed the most gratefulness to God and affection for himself. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XVIII | 
 |  | 
 | THAT was Tom's great secret--the scheme to return home with his | 
 | brother pirates and attend their own funerals. They had paddled over to | 
 | the Missouri shore on a log, at dusk on Saturday, landing five or six | 
 | miles below the village; they had slept in the woods at the edge of the | 
 | town till nearly daylight, and had then crept through back lanes and | 
 | alleys and finished their sleep in the gallery of the church among a | 
 | chaos of invalided benches. | 
 |  | 
 | At breakfast, Monday morning, Aunt Polly and Mary were very loving to | 
 | Tom, and very attentive to his wants. There was an unusual amount of | 
 | talk. In the course of it Aunt Polly said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I don't say it wasn't a fine joke, Tom, to keep everybody | 
 | suffering 'most a week so you boys had a good time, but it is a pity | 
 | you could be so hard-hearted as to let me suffer so. If you could come | 
 | over on a log to go to your funeral, you could have come over and give | 
 | me a hint some way that you warn't dead, but only run off." | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, you could have done that, Tom," said Mary; "and I believe you | 
 | would if you had thought of it." | 
 |  | 
 | "Would you, Tom?" said Aunt Polly, her face lighting wistfully. "Say, | 
 | now, would you, if you'd thought of it?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I--well, I don't know. 'Twould 'a' spoiled everything." | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, I hoped you loved me that much," said Aunt Polly, with a grieved | 
 | tone that discomforted the boy. "It would have been something if you'd | 
 | cared enough to THINK of it, even if you didn't DO it." | 
 |  | 
 | "Now, auntie, that ain't any harm," pleaded Mary; "it's only Tom's | 
 | giddy way--he is always in such a rush that he never thinks of | 
 | anything." | 
 |  | 
 | "More's the pity. Sid would have thought. And Sid would have come and | 
 | DONE it, too. Tom, you'll look back, some day, when it's too late, and | 
 | wish you'd cared a little more for me when it would have cost you so | 
 | little." | 
 |  | 
 | "Now, auntie, you know I do care for you," said Tom. | 
 |  | 
 | "I'd know it better if you acted more like it." | 
 |  | 
 | "I wish now I'd thought," said Tom, with a repentant tone; "but I | 
 | dreamt about you, anyway. That's something, ain't it?" | 
 |  | 
 | "It ain't much--a cat does that much--but it's better than nothing. | 
 | What did you dream?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, Wednesday night I dreamt that you was sitting over there by the | 
 | bed, and Sid was sitting by the woodbox, and Mary next to him." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, so we did. So we always do. I'm glad your dreams could take | 
 | even that much trouble about us." | 
 |  | 
 | "And I dreamt that Joe Harper's mother was here." | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, she was here! Did you dream any more?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, lots. But it's so dim, now." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, try to recollect--can't you?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Somehow it seems to me that the wind--the wind blowed the--the--" | 
 |  | 
 | "Try harder, Tom! The wind did blow something. Come!" | 
 |  | 
 | Tom pressed his fingers on his forehead an anxious minute, and then | 
 | said: | 
 |  | 
 | "I've got it now! I've got it now! It blowed the candle!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Mercy on us! Go on, Tom--go on!" | 
 |  | 
 | "And it seems to me that you said, 'Why, I believe that that door--'" | 
 |  | 
 | "Go ON, Tom!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Just let me study a moment--just a moment. Oh, yes--you said you | 
 | believed the door was open." | 
 |  | 
 | "As I'm sitting here, I did! Didn't I, Mary! Go on!" | 
 |  | 
 | "And then--and then--well I won't be certain, but it seems like as if | 
 | you made Sid go and--and--" | 
 |  | 
 | "Well? Well? What did I make him do, Tom? What did I make him do?" | 
 |  | 
 | "You made him--you--Oh, you made him shut it." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, for the land's sake! I never heard the beat of that in all my | 
 | days! Don't tell ME there ain't anything in dreams, any more. Sereny | 
 | Harper shall know of this before I'm an hour older. I'd like to see her | 
 | get around THIS with her rubbage 'bout superstition. Go on, Tom!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, it's all getting just as bright as day, now. Next you said I | 
 | warn't BAD, only mischeevous and harum-scarum, and not any more | 
 | responsible than--than--I think it was a colt, or something." | 
 |  | 
 | "And so it was! Well, goodness gracious! Go on, Tom!" | 
 |  | 
 | "And then you began to cry." | 
 |  | 
 | "So I did. So I did. Not the first time, neither. And then--" | 
 |  | 
 | "Then Mrs. Harper she began to cry, and said Joe was just the same, | 
 | and she wished she hadn't whipped him for taking cream when she'd | 
 | throwed it out her own self--" | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom! The sperrit was upon you! You was a prophesying--that's what you | 
 | was doing! Land alive, go on, Tom!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Then Sid he said--he said--" | 
 |  | 
 | "I don't think I said anything," said Sid. | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes you did, Sid," said Mary. | 
 |  | 
 | "Shut your heads and let Tom go on! What did he say, Tom?" | 
 |  | 
 | "He said--I THINK he said he hoped I was better off where I was gone | 
 | to, but if I'd been better sometimes--" | 
 |  | 
 | "THERE, d'you hear that! It was his very words!" | 
 |  | 
 | "And you shut him up sharp." | 
 |  | 
 | "I lay I did! There must 'a' been an angel there. There WAS an angel | 
 | there, somewheres!" | 
 |  | 
 | "And Mrs. Harper told about Joe scaring her with a firecracker, and | 
 | you told about Peter and the Painkiller--" | 
 |  | 
 | "Just as true as I live!" | 
 |  | 
 | "And then there was a whole lot of talk 'bout dragging the river for | 
 | us, and 'bout having the funeral Sunday, and then you and old Miss | 
 | Harper hugged and cried, and she went." | 
 |  | 
 | "It happened just so! It happened just so, as sure as I'm a-sitting in | 
 | these very tracks. Tom, you couldn't told it more like if you'd 'a' | 
 | seen it! And then what? Go on, Tom!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Then I thought you prayed for me--and I could see you and hear every | 
 | word you said. And you went to bed, and I was so sorry that I took and | 
 | wrote on a piece of sycamore bark, 'We ain't dead--we are only off | 
 | being pirates,' and put it on the table by the candle; and then you | 
 | looked so good, laying there asleep, that I thought I went and leaned | 
 | over and kissed you on the lips." | 
 |  | 
 | "Did you, Tom, DID you! I just forgive you everything for that!" And | 
 | she seized the boy in a crushing embrace that made him feel like the | 
 | guiltiest of villains. | 
 |  | 
 | "It was very kind, even though it was only a--dream," Sid soliloquized | 
 | just audibly. | 
 |  | 
 | "Shut up, Sid! A body does just the same in a dream as he'd do if he | 
 | was awake. Here's a big Milum apple I've been saving for you, Tom, if | 
 | you was ever found again--now go 'long to school. I'm thankful to the | 
 | good God and Father of us all I've got you back, that's long-suffering | 
 | and merciful to them that believe on Him and keep His word, though | 
 | goodness knows I'm unworthy of it, but if only the worthy ones got His | 
 | blessings and had His hand to help them over the rough places, there's | 
 | few enough would smile here or ever enter into His rest when the long | 
 | night comes. Go 'long Sid, Mary, Tom--take yourselves off--you've | 
 | hendered me long enough." | 
 |  | 
 | The children left for school, and the old lady to call on Mrs. Harper | 
 | and vanquish her realism with Tom's marvellous dream. Sid had better | 
 | judgment than to utter the thought that was in his mind as he left the | 
 | house. It was this: "Pretty thin--as long a dream as that, without any | 
 | mistakes in it!" | 
 |  | 
 | What a hero Tom was become, now! He did not go skipping and prancing, | 
 | but moved with a dignified swagger as became a pirate who felt that the | 
 | public eye was on him. And indeed it was; he tried not to seem to see | 
 | the looks or hear the remarks as he passed along, but they were food | 
 | and drink to him. Smaller boys than himself flocked at his heels, as | 
 | proud to be seen with him, and tolerated by him, as if he had been the | 
 | drummer at the head of a procession or the elephant leading a menagerie | 
 | into town. Boys of his own size pretended not to know he had been away | 
 | at all; but they were consuming with envy, nevertheless. They would | 
 | have given anything to have that swarthy suntanned skin of his, and his | 
 | glittering notoriety; and Tom would not have parted with either for a | 
 | circus. | 
 |  | 
 | At school the children made so much of him and of Joe, and delivered | 
 | such eloquent admiration from their eyes, that the two heroes were not | 
 | long in becoming insufferably "stuck-up." They began to tell their | 
 | adventures to hungry listeners--but they only began; it was not a thing | 
 | likely to have an end, with imaginations like theirs to furnish | 
 | material. And finally, when they got out their pipes and went serenely | 
 | puffing around, the very summit of glory was reached. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom decided that he could be independent of Becky Thatcher now. Glory | 
 | was sufficient. He would live for glory. Now that he was distinguished, | 
 | maybe she would be wanting to "make up." Well, let her--she should see | 
 | that he could be as indifferent as some other people. Presently she | 
 | arrived. Tom pretended not to see her. He moved away and joined a group | 
 | of boys and girls and began to talk. Soon he observed that she was | 
 | tripping gayly back and forth with flushed face and dancing eyes, | 
 | pretending to be busy chasing schoolmates, and screaming with laughter | 
 | when she made a capture; but he noticed that she always made her | 
 | captures in his vicinity, and that she seemed to cast a conscious eye | 
 | in his direction at such times, too. It gratified all the vicious | 
 | vanity that was in him; and so, instead of winning him, it only "set | 
 | him up" the more and made him the more diligent to avoid betraying that | 
 | he knew she was about. Presently she gave over skylarking, and moved | 
 | irresolutely about, sighing once or twice and glancing furtively and | 
 | wistfully toward Tom. Then she observed that now Tom was talking more | 
 | particularly to Amy Lawrence than to any one else. She felt a sharp | 
 | pang and grew disturbed and uneasy at once. She tried to go away, but | 
 | her feet were treacherous, and carried her to the group instead. She | 
 | said to a girl almost at Tom's elbow--with sham vivacity: | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, Mary Austin! you bad girl, why didn't you come to Sunday-school?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I did come--didn't you see me?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, no! Did you? Where did you sit?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I was in Miss Peters' class, where I always go. I saw YOU." | 
 |  | 
 | "Did you? Why, it's funny I didn't see you. I wanted to tell you about | 
 | the picnic." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, that's jolly. Who's going to give it?" | 
 |  | 
 | "My ma's going to let me have one." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, goody; I hope she'll let ME come." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, she will. The picnic's for me. She'll let anybody come that I | 
 | want, and I want you." | 
 |  | 
 | "That's ever so nice. When is it going to be?" | 
 |  | 
 | "By and by. Maybe about vacation." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, won't it be fun! You going to have all the girls and boys?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, every one that's friends to me--or wants to be"; and she glanced | 
 | ever so furtively at Tom, but he talked right along to Amy Lawrence | 
 | about the terrible storm on the island, and how the lightning tore the | 
 | great sycamore tree "all to flinders" while he was "standing within | 
 | three feet of it." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, may I come?" said Grace Miller. | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes." | 
 |  | 
 | "And me?" said Sally Rogers. | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes." | 
 |  | 
 | "And me, too?" said Susy Harper. "And Joe?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes." | 
 |  | 
 | And so on, with clapping of joyful hands till all the group had begged | 
 | for invitations but Tom and Amy. Then Tom turned coolly away, still | 
 | talking, and took Amy with him. Becky's lips trembled and the tears | 
 | came to her eyes; she hid these signs with a forced gayety and went on | 
 | chattering, but the life had gone out of the picnic, now, and out of | 
 | everything else; she got away as soon as she could and hid herself and | 
 | had what her sex call "a good cry." Then she sat moody, with wounded | 
 | pride, till the bell rang. She roused up, now, with a vindictive cast | 
 | in her eye, and gave her plaited tails a shake and said she knew what | 
 | SHE'D do. | 
 |  | 
 | At recess Tom continued his flirtation with Amy with jubilant | 
 | self-satisfaction. And he kept drifting about to find Becky and lacerate | 
 | her with the performance. At last he spied her, but there was a sudden | 
 | falling of his mercury. She was sitting cosily on a little bench behind | 
 | the schoolhouse looking at a picture-book with Alfred Temple--and so | 
 | absorbed were they, and their heads so close together over the book, | 
 | that they did not seem to be conscious of anything in the world besides. | 
 | Jealousy ran red-hot through Tom's veins. He began to hate himself for | 
 | throwing away the chance Becky had offered for a reconciliation. He | 
 | called himself a fool, and all the hard names he could think of. He | 
 | wanted to cry with vexation. Amy chatted happily along, as they walked, | 
 | for her heart was singing, but Tom's tongue had lost its function. He | 
 | did not hear what Amy was saying, and whenever she paused expectantly he | 
 | could only stammer an awkward assent, which was as often misplaced as | 
 | otherwise. He kept drifting to the rear of the schoolhouse, again and | 
 | again, to sear his eyeballs with the hateful spectacle there. He could | 
 | not help it. And it maddened him to see, as he thought he saw, that | 
 | Becky Thatcher never once suspected that he was even in the land of the | 
 | living. But she did see, nevertheless; and she knew she was winning her | 
 | fight, too, and was glad to see him suffer as she had suffered. | 
 |  | 
 | Amy's happy prattle became intolerable. Tom hinted at things he had to | 
 | attend to; things that must be done; and time was fleeting. But in | 
 | vain--the girl chirped on. Tom thought, "Oh, hang her, ain't I ever | 
 | going to get rid of her?" At last he must be attending to those | 
 | things--and she said artlessly that she would be "around" when school | 
 | let out. And he hastened away, hating her for it. | 
 |  | 
 | "Any other boy!" Tom thought, grating his teeth. "Any boy in the whole | 
 | town but that Saint Louis smarty that thinks he dresses so fine and is | 
 | aristocracy! Oh, all right, I licked you the first day you ever saw | 
 | this town, mister, and I'll lick you again! You just wait till I catch | 
 | you out! I'll just take and--" | 
 |  | 
 | And he went through the motions of thrashing an imaginary boy | 
 | --pummelling the air, and kicking and gouging. "Oh, you do, do you? You | 
 | holler 'nough, do you? Now, then, let that learn you!" And so the | 
 | imaginary flogging was finished to his satisfaction. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom fled home at noon. His conscience could not endure any more of | 
 | Amy's grateful happiness, and his jealousy could bear no more of the | 
 | other distress. Becky resumed her picture inspections with Alfred, but | 
 | as the minutes dragged along and no Tom came to suffer, her triumph | 
 | began to cloud and she lost interest; gravity and absent-mindedness | 
 | followed, and then melancholy; two or three times she pricked up her | 
 | ear at a footstep, but it was a false hope; no Tom came. At last she | 
 | grew entirely miserable and wished she hadn't carried it so far. When | 
 | poor Alfred, seeing that he was losing her, he did not know how, kept | 
 | exclaiming: "Oh, here's a jolly one! look at this!" she lost patience | 
 | at last, and said, "Oh, don't bother me! I don't care for them!" and | 
 | burst into tears, and got up and walked away. | 
 |  | 
 | Alfred dropped alongside and was going to try to comfort her, but she | 
 | said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Go away and leave me alone, can't you! I hate you!" | 
 |  | 
 | So the boy halted, wondering what he could have done--for she had said | 
 | she would look at pictures all through the nooning--and she walked on, | 
 | crying. Then Alfred went musing into the deserted schoolhouse. He was | 
 | humiliated and angry. He easily guessed his way to the truth--the girl | 
 | had simply made a convenience of him to vent her spite upon Tom Sawyer. | 
 | He was far from hating Tom the less when this thought occurred to him. | 
 | He wished there was some way to get that boy into trouble without much | 
 | risk to himself. Tom's spelling-book fell under his eye. Here was his | 
 | opportunity. He gratefully opened to the lesson for the afternoon and | 
 | poured ink upon the page. | 
 |  | 
 | Becky, glancing in at a window behind him at the moment, saw the act, | 
 | and moved on, without discovering herself. She started homeward, now, | 
 | intending to find Tom and tell him; Tom would be thankful and their | 
 | troubles would be healed. Before she was half way home, however, she | 
 | had changed her mind. The thought of Tom's treatment of her when she | 
 | was talking about her picnic came scorching back and filled her with | 
 | shame. She resolved to let him get whipped on the damaged | 
 | spelling-book's account, and to hate him forever, into the bargain. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XIX | 
 |  | 
 | TOM arrived at home in a dreary mood, and the first thing his aunt | 
 | said to him showed him that he had brought his sorrows to an | 
 | unpromising market: | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, I've a notion to skin you alive!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Auntie, what have I done?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, you've done enough. Here I go over to Sereny Harper, like an | 
 | old softy, expecting I'm going to make her believe all that rubbage | 
 | about that dream, when lo and behold you she'd found out from Joe that | 
 | you was over here and heard all the talk we had that night. Tom, I | 
 | don't know what is to become of a boy that will act like that. It makes | 
 | me feel so bad to think you could let me go to Sereny Harper and make | 
 | such a fool of myself and never say a word." | 
 |  | 
 | This was a new aspect of the thing. His smartness of the morning had | 
 | seemed to Tom a good joke before, and very ingenious. It merely looked | 
 | mean and shabby now. He hung his head and could not think of anything | 
 | to say for a moment. Then he said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Auntie, I wish I hadn't done it--but I didn't think." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, child, you never think. You never think of anything but your own | 
 | selfishness. You could think to come all the way over here from | 
 | Jackson's Island in the night to laugh at our troubles, and you could | 
 | think to fool me with a lie about a dream; but you couldn't ever think | 
 | to pity us and save us from sorrow." | 
 |  | 
 | "Auntie, I know now it was mean, but I didn't mean to be mean. I | 
 | didn't, honest. And besides, I didn't come over here to laugh at you | 
 | that night." | 
 |  | 
 | "What did you come for, then?" | 
 |  | 
 | "It was to tell you not to be uneasy about us, because we hadn't got | 
 | drownded." | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, Tom, I would be the thankfullest soul in this world if I could | 
 | believe you ever had as good a thought as that, but you know you never | 
 | did--and I know it, Tom." | 
 |  | 
 | "Indeed and 'deed I did, auntie--I wish I may never stir if I didn't." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, Tom, don't lie--don't do it. It only makes things a hundred times | 
 | worse." | 
 |  | 
 | "It ain't a lie, auntie; it's the truth. I wanted to keep you from | 
 | grieving--that was all that made me come." | 
 |  | 
 | "I'd give the whole world to believe that--it would cover up a power | 
 | of sins, Tom. I'd 'most be glad you'd run off and acted so bad. But it | 
 | ain't reasonable; because, why didn't you tell me, child?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, you see, when you got to talking about the funeral, I just got | 
 | all full of the idea of our coming and hiding in the church, and I | 
 | couldn't somehow bear to spoil it. So I just put the bark back in my | 
 | pocket and kept mum." | 
 |  | 
 | "What bark?" | 
 |  | 
 | "The bark I had wrote on to tell you we'd gone pirating. I wish, now, | 
 | you'd waked up when I kissed you--I do, honest." | 
 |  | 
 | The hard lines in his aunt's face relaxed and a sudden tenderness | 
 | dawned in her eyes. | 
 |  | 
 | "DID you kiss me, Tom?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, yes, I did." | 
 |  | 
 | "Are you sure you did, Tom?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, yes, I did, auntie--certain sure." | 
 |  | 
 | "What did you kiss me for, Tom?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Because I loved you so, and you laid there moaning and I was so sorry." | 
 |  | 
 | The words sounded like truth. The old lady could not hide a tremor in | 
 | her voice when she said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Kiss me again, Tom!--and be off with you to school, now, and don't | 
 | bother me any more." | 
 |  | 
 | The moment he was gone, she ran to a closet and got out the ruin of a | 
 | jacket which Tom had gone pirating in. Then she stopped, with it in her | 
 | hand, and said to herself: | 
 |  | 
 | "No, I don't dare. Poor boy, I reckon he's lied about it--but it's a | 
 | blessed, blessed lie, there's such a comfort come from it. I hope the | 
 | Lord--I KNOW the Lord will forgive him, because it was such | 
 | goodheartedness in him to tell it. But I don't want to find out it's a | 
 | lie. I won't look." | 
 |  | 
 | She put the jacket away, and stood by musing a minute. Twice she put | 
 | out her hand to take the garment again, and twice she refrained. Once | 
 | more she ventured, and this time she fortified herself with the | 
 | thought: "It's a good lie--it's a good lie--I won't let it grieve me." | 
 | So she sought the jacket pocket. A moment later she was reading Tom's | 
 | piece of bark through flowing tears and saying: "I could forgive the | 
 | boy, now, if he'd committed a million sins!" | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XX | 
 |  | 
 | THERE was something about Aunt Polly's manner, when she kissed Tom, | 
 | that swept away his low spirits and made him lighthearted and happy | 
 | again. He started to school and had the luck of coming upon Becky | 
 | Thatcher at the head of Meadow Lane. His mood always determined his | 
 | manner. Without a moment's hesitation he ran to her and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "I acted mighty mean to-day, Becky, and I'm so sorry. I won't ever, | 
 | ever do that way again, as long as ever I live--please make up, won't | 
 | you?" | 
 |  | 
 | The girl stopped and looked him scornfully in the face: | 
 |  | 
 | "I'll thank you to keep yourself TO yourself, Mr. Thomas Sawyer. I'll | 
 | never speak to you again." | 
 |  | 
 | She tossed her head and passed on. Tom was so stunned that he had not | 
 | even presence of mind enough to say "Who cares, Miss Smarty?" until the | 
 | right time to say it had gone by. So he said nothing. But he was in a | 
 | fine rage, nevertheless. He moped into the schoolyard wishing she were | 
 | a boy, and imagining how he would trounce her if she were. He presently | 
 | encountered her and delivered a stinging remark as he passed. She | 
 | hurled one in return, and the angry breach was complete. It seemed to | 
 | Becky, in her hot resentment, that she could hardly wait for school to | 
 | "take in," she was so impatient to see Tom flogged for the injured | 
 | spelling-book. If she had had any lingering notion of exposing Alfred | 
 | Temple, Tom's offensive fling had driven it entirely away. | 
 |  | 
 | Poor girl, she did not know how fast she was nearing trouble herself. | 
 | The master, Mr. Dobbins, had reached middle age with an unsatisfied | 
 | ambition. The darling of his desires was, to be a doctor, but poverty | 
 | had decreed that he should be nothing higher than a village | 
 | schoolmaster. Every day he took a mysterious book out of his desk and | 
 | absorbed himself in it at times when no classes were reciting. He kept | 
 | that book under lock and key. There was not an urchin in school but was | 
 | perishing to have a glimpse of it, but the chance never came. Every boy | 
 | and girl had a theory about the nature of that book; but no two | 
 | theories were alike, and there was no way of getting at the facts in | 
 | the case. Now, as Becky was passing by the desk, which stood near the | 
 | door, she noticed that the key was in the lock! It was a precious | 
 | moment. She glanced around; found herself alone, and the next instant | 
 | she had the book in her hands. The title-page--Professor Somebody's | 
 | ANATOMY--carried no information to her mind; so she began to turn the | 
 | leaves. She came at once upon a handsomely engraved and colored | 
 | frontispiece--a human figure, stark naked. At that moment a shadow fell | 
 | on the page and Tom Sawyer stepped in at the door and caught a glimpse | 
 | of the picture. Becky snatched at the book to close it, and had the | 
 | hard luck to tear the pictured page half down the middle. She thrust | 
 | the volume into the desk, turned the key, and burst out crying with | 
 | shame and vexation. | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom Sawyer, you are just as mean as you can be, to sneak up on a | 
 | person and look at what they're looking at." | 
 |  | 
 | "How could I know you was looking at anything?" | 
 |  | 
 | "You ought to be ashamed of yourself, Tom Sawyer; you know you're | 
 | going to tell on me, and oh, what shall I do, what shall I do! I'll be | 
 | whipped, and I never was whipped in school." | 
 |  | 
 | Then she stamped her little foot and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "BE so mean if you want to! I know something that's going to happen. | 
 | You just wait and you'll see! Hateful, hateful, hateful!"--and she | 
 | flung out of the house with a new explosion of crying. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom stood still, rather flustered by this onslaught. Presently he said | 
 | to himself: | 
 |  | 
 | "What a curious kind of a fool a girl is! Never been licked in school! | 
 | Shucks! What's a licking! That's just like a girl--they're so | 
 | thin-skinned and chicken-hearted. Well, of course I ain't going to tell | 
 | old Dobbins on this little fool, because there's other ways of getting | 
 | even on her, that ain't so mean; but what of it? Old Dobbins will ask | 
 | who it was tore his book. Nobody'll answer. Then he'll do just the way | 
 | he always does--ask first one and then t'other, and when he comes to the | 
 | right girl he'll know it, without any telling. Girls' faces always tell | 
 | on them. They ain't got any backbone. She'll get licked. Well, it's a | 
 | kind of a tight place for Becky Thatcher, because there ain't any way | 
 | out of it." Tom conned the thing a moment longer, and then added: "All | 
 | right, though; she'd like to see me in just such a fix--let her sweat it | 
 | out!" | 
 |  | 
 | Tom joined the mob of skylarking scholars outside. In a few moments | 
 | the master arrived and school "took in." Tom did not feel a strong | 
 | interest in his studies. Every time he stole a glance at the girls' | 
 | side of the room Becky's face troubled him. Considering all things, he | 
 | did not want to pity her, and yet it was all he could do to help it. He | 
 | could get up no exultation that was really worthy the name. Presently | 
 | the spelling-book discovery was made, and Tom's mind was entirely full | 
 | of his own matters for a while after that. Becky roused up from her | 
 | lethargy of distress and showed good interest in the proceedings. She | 
 | did not expect that Tom could get out of his trouble by denying that he | 
 | spilt the ink on the book himself; and she was right. The denial only | 
 | seemed to make the thing worse for Tom. Becky supposed she would be | 
 | glad of that, and she tried to believe she was glad of it, but she | 
 | found she was not certain. When the worst came to the worst, she had an | 
 | impulse to get up and tell on Alfred Temple, but she made an effort and | 
 | forced herself to keep still--because, said she to herself, "he'll tell | 
 | about me tearing the picture sure. I wouldn't say a word, not to save | 
 | his life!" | 
 |  | 
 | Tom took his whipping and went back to his seat not at all | 
 | broken-hearted, for he thought it was possible that he had unknowingly | 
 | upset the ink on the spelling-book himself, in some skylarking bout--he | 
 | had denied it for form's sake and because it was custom, and had stuck | 
 | to the denial from principle. | 
 |  | 
 | A whole hour drifted by, the master sat nodding in his throne, the air | 
 | was drowsy with the hum of study. By and by, Mr. Dobbins straightened | 
 | himself up, yawned, then unlocked his desk, and reached for his book, | 
 | but seemed undecided whether to take it out or leave it. Most of the | 
 | pupils glanced up languidly, but there were two among them that watched | 
 | his movements with intent eyes. Mr. Dobbins fingered his book absently | 
 | for a while, then took it out and settled himself in his chair to read! | 
 | Tom shot a glance at Becky. He had seen a hunted and helpless rabbit | 
 | look as she did, with a gun levelled at its head. Instantly he forgot | 
 | his quarrel with her. Quick--something must be done! done in a flash, | 
 | too! But the very imminence of the emergency paralyzed his invention. | 
 | Good!--he had an inspiration! He would run and snatch the book, spring | 
 | through the door and fly. But his resolution shook for one little | 
 | instant, and the chance was lost--the master opened the volume. If Tom | 
 | only had the wasted opportunity back again! Too late. There was no help | 
 | for Becky now, he said. The next moment the master faced the school. | 
 | Every eye sank under his gaze. There was that in it which smote even | 
 | the innocent with fear. There was silence while one might count ten | 
 | --the master was gathering his wrath. Then he spoke: "Who tore this book?" | 
 |  | 
 | There was not a sound. One could have heard a pin drop. The stillness | 
 | continued; the master searched face after face for signs of guilt. | 
 |  | 
 | "Benjamin Rogers, did you tear this book?" | 
 |  | 
 | A denial. Another pause. | 
 |  | 
 | "Joseph Harper, did you?" | 
 |  | 
 | Another denial. Tom's uneasiness grew more and more intense under the | 
 | slow torture of these proceedings. The master scanned the ranks of | 
 | boys--considered a while, then turned to the girls: | 
 |  | 
 | "Amy Lawrence?" | 
 |  | 
 | A shake of the head. | 
 |  | 
 | "Gracie Miller?" | 
 |  | 
 | The same sign. | 
 |  | 
 | "Susan Harper, did you do this?" | 
 |  | 
 | Another negative. The next girl was Becky Thatcher. Tom was trembling | 
 | from head to foot with excitement and a sense of the hopelessness of | 
 | the situation. | 
 |  | 
 | "Rebecca Thatcher" [Tom glanced at her face--it was white with terror] | 
 | --"did you tear--no, look me in the face" [her hands rose in appeal] | 
 | --"did you tear this book?" | 
 |  | 
 | A thought shot like lightning through Tom's brain. He sprang to his | 
 | feet and shouted--"I done it!" | 
 |  | 
 | The school stared in perplexity at this incredible folly. Tom stood a | 
 | moment, to gather his dismembered faculties; and when he stepped | 
 | forward to go to his punishment the surprise, the gratitude, the | 
 | adoration that shone upon him out of poor Becky's eyes seemed pay | 
 | enough for a hundred floggings. Inspired by the splendor of his own | 
 | act, he took without an outcry the most merciless flaying that even Mr. | 
 | Dobbins had ever administered; and also received with indifference the | 
 | added cruelty of a command to remain two hours after school should be | 
 | dismissed--for he knew who would wait for him outside till his | 
 | captivity was done, and not count the tedious time as loss, either. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom went to bed that night planning vengeance against Alfred Temple; | 
 | for with shame and repentance Becky had told him all, not forgetting | 
 | her own treachery; but even the longing for vengeance had to give way, | 
 | soon, to pleasanter musings, and he fell asleep at last with Becky's | 
 | latest words lingering dreamily in his ear-- | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, how COULD you be so noble!" | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XXI | 
 |  | 
 | VACATION was approaching. The schoolmaster, always severe, grew | 
 | severer and more exacting than ever, for he wanted the school to make a | 
 | good showing on "Examination" day. His rod and his ferule were seldom | 
 | idle now--at least among the smaller pupils. Only the biggest boys, and | 
 | young ladies of eighteen and twenty, escaped lashing. Mr. Dobbins' | 
 | lashings were very vigorous ones, too; for although he carried, under | 
 | his wig, a perfectly bald and shiny head, he had only reached middle | 
 | age, and there was no sign of feebleness in his muscle. As the great | 
 | day approached, all the tyranny that was in him came to the surface; he | 
 | seemed to take a vindictive pleasure in punishing the least | 
 | shortcomings. The consequence was, that the smaller boys spent their | 
 | days in terror and suffering and their nights in plotting revenge. They | 
 | threw away no opportunity to do the master a mischief. But he kept | 
 | ahead all the time. The retribution that followed every vengeful | 
 | success was so sweeping and majestic that the boys always retired from | 
 | the field badly worsted. At last they conspired together and hit upon a | 
 | plan that promised a dazzling victory. They swore in the sign-painter's | 
 | boy, told him the scheme, and asked his help. He had his own reasons | 
 | for being delighted, for the master boarded in his father's family and | 
 | had given the boy ample cause to hate him. The master's wife would go | 
 | on a visit to the country in a few days, and there would be nothing to | 
 | interfere with the plan; the master always prepared himself for great | 
 | occasions by getting pretty well fuddled, and the sign-painter's boy | 
 | said that when the dominie had reached the proper condition on | 
 | Examination Evening he would "manage the thing" while he napped in his | 
 | chair; then he would have him awakened at the right time and hurried | 
 | away to school. | 
 |  | 
 | In the fulness of time the interesting occasion arrived. At eight in | 
 | the evening the schoolhouse was brilliantly lighted, and adorned with | 
 | wreaths and festoons of foliage and flowers. The master sat throned in | 
 | his great chair upon a raised platform, with his blackboard behind him. | 
 | He was looking tolerably mellow. Three rows of benches on each side and | 
 | six rows in front of him were occupied by the dignitaries of the town | 
 | and by the parents of the pupils. To his left, back of the rows of | 
 | citizens, was a spacious temporary platform upon which were seated the | 
 | scholars who were to take part in the exercises of the evening; rows of | 
 | small boys, washed and dressed to an intolerable state of discomfort; | 
 | rows of gawky big boys; snowbanks of girls and young ladies clad in | 
 | lawn and muslin and conspicuously conscious of their bare arms, their | 
 | grandmothers' ancient trinkets, their bits of pink and blue ribbon and | 
 | the flowers in their hair. All the rest of the house was filled with | 
 | non-participating scholars. | 
 |  | 
 | The exercises began. A very little boy stood up and sheepishly | 
 | recited, "You'd scarce expect one of my age to speak in public on the | 
 | stage," etc.--accompanying himself with the painfully exact and | 
 | spasmodic gestures which a machine might have used--supposing the | 
 | machine to be a trifle out of order. But he got through safely, though | 
 | cruelly scared, and got a fine round of applause when he made his | 
 | manufactured bow and retired. | 
 |  | 
 | A little shamefaced girl lisped, "Mary had a little lamb," etc., | 
 | performed a compassion-inspiring curtsy, got her meed of applause, and | 
 | sat down flushed and happy. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom Sawyer stepped forward with conceited confidence and soared into | 
 | the unquenchable and indestructible "Give me liberty or give me death" | 
 | speech, with fine fury and frantic gesticulation, and broke down in the | 
 | middle of it. A ghastly stage-fright seized him, his legs quaked under | 
 | him and he was like to choke. True, he had the manifest sympathy of the | 
 | house but he had the house's silence, too, which was even worse than | 
 | its sympathy. The master frowned, and this completed the disaster. Tom | 
 | struggled awhile and then retired, utterly defeated. There was a weak | 
 | attempt at applause, but it died early. | 
 |  | 
 | "The Boy Stood on the Burning Deck" followed; also "The Assyrian Came | 
 | Down," and other declamatory gems. Then there were reading exercises, | 
 | and a spelling fight. The meagre Latin class recited with honor. The | 
 | prime feature of the evening was in order, now--original "compositions" | 
 | by the young ladies. Each in her turn stepped forward to the edge of | 
 | the platform, cleared her throat, held up her manuscript (tied with | 
 | dainty ribbon), and proceeded to read, with labored attention to | 
 | "expression" and punctuation. The themes were the same that had been | 
 | illuminated upon similar occasions by their mothers before them, their | 
 | grandmothers, and doubtless all their ancestors in the female line | 
 | clear back to the Crusades. "Friendship" was one; "Memories of Other | 
 | Days"; "Religion in History"; "Dream Land"; "The Advantages of | 
 | Culture"; "Forms of Political Government Compared and Contrasted"; | 
 | "Melancholy"; "Filial Love"; "Heart Longings," etc., etc. | 
 |  | 
 | A prevalent feature in these compositions was a nursed and petted | 
 | melancholy; another was a wasteful and opulent gush of "fine language"; | 
 | another was a tendency to lug in by the ears particularly prized words | 
 | and phrases until they were worn entirely out; and a peculiarity that | 
 | conspicuously marked and marred them was the inveterate and intolerable | 
 | sermon that wagged its crippled tail at the end of each and every one | 
 | of them. No matter what the subject might be, a brain-racking effort | 
 | was made to squirm it into some aspect or other that the moral and | 
 | religious mind could contemplate with edification. The glaring | 
 | insincerity of these sermons was not sufficient to compass the | 
 | banishment of the fashion from the schools, and it is not sufficient | 
 | to-day; it never will be sufficient while the world stands, perhaps. | 
 | There is no school in all our land where the young ladies do not feel | 
 | obliged to close their compositions with a sermon; and you will find | 
 | that the sermon of the most frivolous and the least religious girl in | 
 | the school is always the longest and the most relentlessly pious. But | 
 | enough of this. Homely truth is unpalatable. | 
 |  | 
 | Let us return to the "Examination." The first composition that was | 
 | read was one entitled "Is this, then, Life?" Perhaps the reader can | 
 | endure an extract from it: | 
 |  | 
 |   "In the common walks of life, with what delightful | 
 |    emotions does the youthful mind look forward to some | 
 |    anticipated scene of festivity! Imagination is busy | 
 |    sketching rose-tinted pictures of joy. In fancy, the | 
 |    voluptuous votary of fashion sees herself amid the | 
 |    festive throng, 'the observed of all observers.' Her | 
 |    graceful form, arrayed in snowy robes, is whirling | 
 |    through the mazes of the joyous dance; her eye is | 
 |    brightest, her step is lightest in the gay assembly. | 
 |  | 
 |   "In such delicious fancies time quickly glides by, | 
 |    and the welcome hour arrives for her entrance into | 
 |    the Elysian world, of which she has had such bright | 
 |    dreams. How fairy-like does everything appear to | 
 |    her enchanted vision! Each new scene is more charming | 
 |    than the last. But after a while she finds that | 
 |    beneath this goodly exterior, all is vanity, the | 
 |    flattery which once charmed her soul, now grates | 
 |    harshly upon her ear; the ball-room has lost its | 
 |    charms; and with wasted health and imbittered heart, | 
 |    she turns away with the conviction that earthly | 
 |    pleasures cannot satisfy the longings of the soul!" | 
 |  | 
 | And so forth and so on. There was a buzz of gratification from time to | 
 | time during the reading, accompanied by whispered ejaculations of "How | 
 | sweet!" "How eloquent!" "So true!" etc., and after the thing had closed | 
 | with a peculiarly afflicting sermon the applause was enthusiastic. | 
 |  | 
 | Then arose a slim, melancholy girl, whose face had the "interesting" | 
 | paleness that comes of pills and indigestion, and read a "poem." Two | 
 | stanzas of it will do: | 
 |  | 
 |    "A MISSOURI MAIDEN'S FAREWELL TO ALABAMA | 
 |  | 
 |    "Alabama, good-bye! I love thee well! | 
 |       But yet for a while do I leave thee now! | 
 |     Sad, yes, sad thoughts of thee my heart doth swell, | 
 |       And burning recollections throng my brow! | 
 |     For I have wandered through thy flowery woods; | 
 |       Have roamed and read near Tallapoosa's stream; | 
 |     Have listened to Tallassee's warring floods, | 
 |       And wooed on Coosa's side Aurora's beam. | 
 |  | 
 |    "Yet shame I not to bear an o'er-full heart, | 
 |       Nor blush to turn behind my tearful eyes; | 
 |     'Tis from no stranger land I now must part, | 
 |       'Tis to no strangers left I yield these sighs. | 
 |     Welcome and home were mine within this State, | 
 |       Whose vales I leave--whose spires fade fast from me | 
 |     And cold must be mine eyes, and heart, and tete, | 
 |       When, dear Alabama! they turn cold on thee!" | 
 |  | 
 | There were very few there who knew what "tete" meant, but the poem was | 
 | very satisfactory, nevertheless. | 
 |  | 
 | Next appeared a dark-complexioned, black-eyed, black-haired young | 
 | lady, who paused an impressive moment, assumed a tragic expression, and | 
 | began to read in a measured, solemn tone: | 
 |  | 
 |   "A VISION | 
 |  | 
 |    "Dark and tempestuous was night. Around the | 
 |    throne on high not a single star quivered; but | 
 |    the deep intonations of the heavy thunder | 
 |    constantly vibrated upon the ear; whilst the | 
 |    terrific lightning revelled in angry mood | 
 |    through the cloudy chambers of heaven, seeming | 
 |    to scorn the power exerted over its terror by | 
 |    the illustrious Franklin! Even the boisterous | 
 |    winds unanimously came forth from their mystic | 
 |    homes, and blustered about as if to enhance by | 
 |    their aid the wildness of the scene. | 
 |  | 
 |    "At such a time, so dark, so dreary, for human | 
 |    sympathy my very spirit sighed; but instead thereof, | 
 |  | 
 |    "'My dearest friend, my counsellor, my comforter | 
 |    and guide--My joy in grief, my second bliss | 
 |    in joy,' came to my side. She moved like one of | 
 |    those bright beings pictured in the sunny walks | 
 |    of fancy's Eden by the romantic and young, a | 
 |    queen of beauty unadorned save by her own | 
 |    transcendent loveliness. So soft was her step, it | 
 |    failed to make even a sound, and but for the | 
 |    magical thrill imparted by her genial touch, as | 
 |    other unobtrusive beauties, she would have glided | 
 |    away un-perceived--unsought. A strange sadness | 
 |    rested upon her features, like icy tears upon | 
 |    the robe of December, as she pointed to the | 
 |    contending elements without, and bade me contemplate | 
 |    the two beings presented." | 
 |  | 
 | This nightmare occupied some ten pages of manuscript and wound up with | 
 | a sermon so destructive of all hope to non-Presbyterians that it took | 
 | the first prize. This composition was considered to be the very finest | 
 | effort of the evening. The mayor of the village, in delivering the | 
 | prize to the author of it, made a warm speech in which he said that it | 
 | was by far the most "eloquent" thing he had ever listened to, and that | 
 | Daniel Webster himself might well be proud of it. | 
 |  | 
 | It may be remarked, in passing, that the number of compositions in | 
 | which the word "beauteous" was over-fondled, and human experience | 
 | referred to as "life's page," was up to the usual average. | 
 |  | 
 | Now the master, mellow almost to the verge of geniality, put his chair | 
 | aside, turned his back to the audience, and began to draw a map of | 
 | America on the blackboard, to exercise the geography class upon. But he | 
 | made a sad business of it with his unsteady hand, and a smothered | 
 | titter rippled over the house. He knew what the matter was, and set | 
 | himself to right it. He sponged out lines and remade them; but he only | 
 | distorted them more than ever, and the tittering was more pronounced. | 
 | He threw his entire attention upon his work, now, as if determined not | 
 | to be put down by the mirth. He felt that all eyes were fastened upon | 
 | him; he imagined he was succeeding, and yet the tittering continued; it | 
 | even manifestly increased. And well it might. There was a garret above, | 
 | pierced with a scuttle over his head; and down through this scuttle | 
 | came a cat, suspended around the haunches by a string; she had a rag | 
 | tied about her head and jaws to keep her from mewing; as she slowly | 
 | descended she curved upward and clawed at the string, she swung | 
 | downward and clawed at the intangible air. The tittering rose higher | 
 | and higher--the cat was within six inches of the absorbed teacher's | 
 | head--down, down, a little lower, and she grabbed his wig with her | 
 | desperate claws, clung to it, and was snatched up into the garret in an | 
 | instant with her trophy still in her possession! And how the light did | 
 | blaze abroad from the master's bald pate--for the sign-painter's boy | 
 | had GILDED it! | 
 |  | 
 | That broke up the meeting. The boys were avenged. Vacation had come. | 
 |  | 
 |    NOTE:--The pretended "compositions" quoted in | 
 |    this chapter are taken without alteration from a | 
 |    volume entitled "Prose and Poetry, by a Western | 
 |    Lady"--but they are exactly and precisely after | 
 |    the schoolgirl pattern, and hence are much | 
 |    happier than any mere imitations could be. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XXII | 
 |  | 
 | TOM joined the new order of Cadets of Temperance, being attracted by | 
 | the showy character of their "regalia." He promised to abstain from | 
 | smoking, chewing, and profanity as long as he remained a member. Now he | 
 | found out a new thing--namely, that to promise not to do a thing is the | 
 | surest way in the world to make a body want to go and do that very | 
 | thing. Tom soon found himself tormented with a desire to drink and | 
 | swear; the desire grew to be so intense that nothing but the hope of a | 
 | chance to display himself in his red sash kept him from withdrawing | 
 | from the order. Fourth of July was coming; but he soon gave that up | 
 | --gave it up before he had worn his shackles over forty-eight hours--and | 
 | fixed his hopes upon old Judge Frazer, justice of the peace, who was | 
 | apparently on his deathbed and would have a big public funeral, since | 
 | he was so high an official. During three days Tom was deeply concerned | 
 | about the Judge's condition and hungry for news of it. Sometimes his | 
 | hopes ran high--so high that he would venture to get out his regalia | 
 | and practise before the looking-glass. But the Judge had a most | 
 | discouraging way of fluctuating. At last he was pronounced upon the | 
 | mend--and then convalescent. Tom was disgusted; and felt a sense of | 
 | injury, too. He handed in his resignation at once--and that night the | 
 | Judge suffered a relapse and died. Tom resolved that he would never | 
 | trust a man like that again. | 
 |  | 
 | The funeral was a fine thing. The Cadets paraded in a style calculated | 
 | to kill the late member with envy. Tom was a free boy again, however | 
 | --there was something in that. He could drink and swear, now--but found | 
 | to his surprise that he did not want to. The simple fact that he could, | 
 | took the desire away, and the charm of it. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom presently wondered to find that his coveted vacation was beginning | 
 | to hang a little heavily on his hands. | 
 |  | 
 | He attempted a diary--but nothing happened during three days, and so | 
 | he abandoned it. | 
 |  | 
 | The first of all the negro minstrel shows came to town, and made a | 
 | sensation. Tom and Joe Harper got up a band of performers and were | 
 | happy for two days. | 
 |  | 
 | Even the Glorious Fourth was in some sense a failure, for it rained | 
 | hard, there was no procession in consequence, and the greatest man in | 
 | the world (as Tom supposed), Mr. Benton, an actual United States | 
 | Senator, proved an overwhelming disappointment--for he was not | 
 | twenty-five feet high, nor even anywhere in the neighborhood of it. | 
 |  | 
 | A circus came. The boys played circus for three days afterward in | 
 | tents made of rag carpeting--admission, three pins for boys, two for | 
 | girls--and then circusing was abandoned. | 
 |  | 
 | A phrenologist and a mesmerizer came--and went again and left the | 
 | village duller and drearier than ever. | 
 |  | 
 | There were some boys-and-girls' parties, but they were so few and so | 
 | delightful that they only made the aching voids between ache the harder. | 
 |  | 
 | Becky Thatcher was gone to her Constantinople home to stay with her | 
 | parents during vacation--so there was no bright side to life anywhere. | 
 |  | 
 | The dreadful secret of the murder was a chronic misery. It was a very | 
 | cancer for permanency and pain. | 
 |  | 
 | Then came the measles. | 
 |  | 
 | During two long weeks Tom lay a prisoner, dead to the world and its | 
 | happenings. He was very ill, he was interested in nothing. When he got | 
 | upon his feet at last and moved feebly down-town, a melancholy change | 
 | had come over everything and every creature. There had been a | 
 | "revival," and everybody had "got religion," not only the adults, but | 
 | even the boys and girls. Tom went about, hoping against hope for the | 
 | sight of one blessed sinful face, but disappointment crossed him | 
 | everywhere. He found Joe Harper studying a Testament, and turned sadly | 
 | away from the depressing spectacle. He sought Ben Rogers, and found him | 
 | visiting the poor with a basket of tracts. He hunted up Jim Hollis, who | 
 | called his attention to the precious blessing of his late measles as a | 
 | warning. Every boy he encountered added another ton to his depression; | 
 | and when, in desperation, he flew for refuge at last to the bosom of | 
 | Huckleberry Finn and was received with a Scriptural quotation, his | 
 | heart broke and he crept home and to bed realizing that he alone of all | 
 | the town was lost, forever and forever. | 
 |  | 
 | And that night there came on a terrific storm, with driving rain, | 
 | awful claps of thunder and blinding sheets of lightning. He covered his | 
 | head with the bedclothes and waited in a horror of suspense for his | 
 | doom; for he had not the shadow of a doubt that all this hubbub was | 
 | about him. He believed he had taxed the forbearance of the powers above | 
 | to the extremity of endurance and that this was the result. It might | 
 | have seemed to him a waste of pomp and ammunition to kill a bug with a | 
 | battery of artillery, but there seemed nothing incongruous about the | 
 | getting up such an expensive thunderstorm as this to knock the turf | 
 | from under an insect like himself. | 
 |  | 
 | By and by the tempest spent itself and died without accomplishing its | 
 | object. The boy's first impulse was to be grateful, and reform. His | 
 | second was to wait--for there might not be any more storms. | 
 |  | 
 | The next day the doctors were back; Tom had relapsed. The three weeks | 
 | he spent on his back this time seemed an entire age. When he got abroad | 
 | at last he was hardly grateful that he had been spared, remembering how | 
 | lonely was his estate, how companionless and forlorn he was. He drifted | 
 | listlessly down the street and found Jim Hollis acting as judge in a | 
 | juvenile court that was trying a cat for murder, in the presence of her | 
 | victim, a bird. He found Joe Harper and Huck Finn up an alley eating a | 
 | stolen melon. Poor lads! they--like Tom--had suffered a relapse. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XXIII | 
 |  | 
 | AT last the sleepy atmosphere was stirred--and vigorously: the murder | 
 | trial came on in the court. It became the absorbing topic of village | 
 | talk immediately. Tom could not get away from it. Every reference to | 
 | the murder sent a shudder to his heart, for his troubled conscience and | 
 | fears almost persuaded him that these remarks were put forth in his | 
 | hearing as "feelers"; he did not see how he could be suspected of | 
 | knowing anything about the murder, but still he could not be | 
 | comfortable in the midst of this gossip. It kept him in a cold shiver | 
 | all the time. He took Huck to a lonely place to have a talk with him. | 
 | It would be some relief to unseal his tongue for a little while; to | 
 | divide his burden of distress with another sufferer. Moreover, he | 
 | wanted to assure himself that Huck had remained discreet. | 
 |  | 
 | "Huck, have you ever told anybody about--that?" | 
 |  | 
 | "'Bout what?" | 
 |  | 
 | "You know what." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh--'course I haven't." | 
 |  | 
 | "Never a word?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Never a solitary word, so help me. What makes you ask?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I was afeard." | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, Tom Sawyer, we wouldn't be alive two days if that got found out. | 
 | YOU know that." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom felt more comfortable. After a pause: | 
 |  | 
 | "Huck, they couldn't anybody get you to tell, could they?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Get me to tell? Why, if I wanted that half-breed devil to drownd me | 
 | they could get me to tell. They ain't no different way." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, that's all right, then. I reckon we're safe as long as we keep | 
 | mum. But let's swear again, anyway. It's more surer." | 
 |  | 
 | "I'm agreed." | 
 |  | 
 | So they swore again with dread solemnities. | 
 |  | 
 | "What is the talk around, Huck? I've heard a power of it." | 
 |  | 
 | "Talk? Well, it's just Muff Potter, Muff Potter, Muff Potter all the | 
 | time. It keeps me in a sweat, constant, so's I want to hide som'ers." | 
 |  | 
 | "That's just the same way they go on round me. I reckon he's a goner. | 
 | Don't you feel sorry for him, sometimes?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Most always--most always. He ain't no account; but then he hain't | 
 | ever done anything to hurt anybody. Just fishes a little, to get money | 
 | to get drunk on--and loafs around considerable; but lord, we all do | 
 | that--leastways most of us--preachers and such like. But he's kind of | 
 | good--he give me half a fish, once, when there warn't enough for two; | 
 | and lots of times he's kind of stood by me when I was out of luck." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, he's mended kites for me, Huck, and knitted hooks on to my | 
 | line. I wish we could get him out of there." | 
 |  | 
 | "My! we couldn't get him out, Tom. And besides, 'twouldn't do any | 
 | good; they'd ketch him again." | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes--so they would. But I hate to hear 'em abuse him so like the | 
 | dickens when he never done--that." | 
 |  | 
 | "I do too, Tom. Lord, I hear 'em say he's the bloodiest looking | 
 | villain in this country, and they wonder he wasn't ever hung before." | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, they talk like that, all the time. I've heard 'em say that if he | 
 | was to get free they'd lynch him." | 
 |  | 
 | "And they'd do it, too." | 
 |  | 
 | The boys had a long talk, but it brought them little comfort. As the | 
 | twilight drew on, they found themselves hanging about the neighborhood | 
 | of the little isolated jail, perhaps with an undefined hope that | 
 | something would happen that might clear away their difficulties. But | 
 | nothing happened; there seemed to be no angels or fairies interested in | 
 | this luckless captive. | 
 |  | 
 | The boys did as they had often done before--went to the cell grating | 
 | and gave Potter some tobacco and matches. He was on the ground floor | 
 | and there were no guards. | 
 |  | 
 | His gratitude for their gifts had always smote their consciences | 
 | before--it cut deeper than ever, this time. They felt cowardly and | 
 | treacherous to the last degree when Potter said: | 
 |  | 
 | "You've been mighty good to me, boys--better'n anybody else in this | 
 | town. And I don't forget it, I don't. Often I says to myself, says I, | 
 | 'I used to mend all the boys' kites and things, and show 'em where the | 
 | good fishin' places was, and befriend 'em what I could, and now they've | 
 | all forgot old Muff when he's in trouble; but Tom don't, and Huck | 
 | don't--THEY don't forget him, says I, 'and I don't forget them.' Well, | 
 | boys, I done an awful thing--drunk and crazy at the time--that's the | 
 | only way I account for it--and now I got to swing for it, and it's | 
 | right. Right, and BEST, too, I reckon--hope so, anyway. Well, we won't | 
 | talk about that. I don't want to make YOU feel bad; you've befriended | 
 | me. But what I want to say, is, don't YOU ever get drunk--then you won't | 
 | ever get here. Stand a litter furder west--so--that's it; it's a prime | 
 | comfort to see faces that's friendly when a body's in such a muck of | 
 | trouble, and there don't none come here but yourn. Good friendly | 
 | faces--good friendly faces. Git up on one another's backs and let me | 
 | touch 'em. That's it. Shake hands--yourn'll come through the bars, but | 
 | mine's too big. Little hands, and weak--but they've helped Muff Potter | 
 | a power, and they'd help him more if they could." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom went home miserable, and his dreams that night were full of | 
 | horrors. The next day and the day after, he hung about the court-room, | 
 | drawn by an almost irresistible impulse to go in, but forcing himself | 
 | to stay out. Huck was having the same experience. They studiously | 
 | avoided each other. Each wandered away, from time to time, but the same | 
 | dismal fascination always brought them back presently. Tom kept his | 
 | ears open when idlers sauntered out of the court-room, but invariably | 
 | heard distressing news--the toils were closing more and more | 
 | relentlessly around poor Potter. At the end of the second day the | 
 | village talk was to the effect that Injun Joe's evidence stood firm and | 
 | unshaken, and that there was not the slightest question as to what the | 
 | jury's verdict would be. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom was out late, that night, and came to bed through the window. He | 
 | was in a tremendous state of excitement. It was hours before he got to | 
 | sleep. All the village flocked to the court-house the next morning, for | 
 | this was to be the great day. Both sexes were about equally represented | 
 | in the packed audience. After a long wait the jury filed in and took | 
 | their places; shortly afterward, Potter, pale and haggard, timid and | 
 | hopeless, was brought in, with chains upon him, and seated where all | 
 | the curious eyes could stare at him; no less conspicuous was Injun Joe, | 
 | stolid as ever. There was another pause, and then the judge arrived and | 
 | the sheriff proclaimed the opening of the court. The usual whisperings | 
 | among the lawyers and gathering together of papers followed. These | 
 | details and accompanying delays worked up an atmosphere of preparation | 
 | that was as impressive as it was fascinating. | 
 |  | 
 | Now a witness was called who testified that he found Muff Potter | 
 | washing in the brook, at an early hour of the morning that the murder | 
 | was discovered, and that he immediately sneaked away. After some | 
 | further questioning, counsel for the prosecution said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Take the witness." | 
 |  | 
 | The prisoner raised his eyes for a moment, but dropped them again when | 
 | his own counsel said: | 
 |  | 
 | "I have no questions to ask him." | 
 |  | 
 | The next witness proved the finding of the knife near the corpse. | 
 | Counsel for the prosecution said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Take the witness." | 
 |  | 
 | "I have no questions to ask him," Potter's lawyer replied. | 
 |  | 
 | A third witness swore he had often seen the knife in Potter's | 
 | possession. | 
 |  | 
 | "Take the witness." | 
 |  | 
 | Counsel for Potter declined to question him. The faces of the audience | 
 | began to betray annoyance. Did this attorney mean to throw away his | 
 | client's life without an effort? | 
 |  | 
 | Several witnesses deposed concerning Potter's guilty behavior when | 
 | brought to the scene of the murder. They were allowed to leave the | 
 | stand without being cross-questioned. | 
 |  | 
 | Every detail of the damaging circumstances that occurred in the | 
 | graveyard upon that morning which all present remembered so well was | 
 | brought out by credible witnesses, but none of them were cross-examined | 
 | by Potter's lawyer. The perplexity and dissatisfaction of the house | 
 | expressed itself in murmurs and provoked a reproof from the bench. | 
 | Counsel for the prosecution now said: | 
 |  | 
 | "By the oaths of citizens whose simple word is above suspicion, we | 
 | have fastened this awful crime, beyond all possibility of question, | 
 | upon the unhappy prisoner at the bar. We rest our case here." | 
 |  | 
 | A groan escaped from poor Potter, and he put his face in his hands and | 
 | rocked his body softly to and fro, while a painful silence reigned in | 
 | the court-room. Many men were moved, and many women's compassion | 
 | testified itself in tears. Counsel for the defence rose and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Your honor, in our remarks at the opening of this trial, we | 
 | foreshadowed our purpose to prove that our client did this fearful deed | 
 | while under the influence of a blind and irresponsible delirium | 
 | produced by drink. We have changed our mind. We shall not offer that | 
 | plea." [Then to the clerk:] "Call Thomas Sawyer!" | 
 |  | 
 | A puzzled amazement awoke in every face in the house, not even | 
 | excepting Potter's. Every eye fastened itself with wondering interest | 
 | upon Tom as he rose and took his place upon the stand. The boy looked | 
 | wild enough, for he was badly scared. The oath was administered. | 
 |  | 
 | "Thomas Sawyer, where were you on the seventeenth of June, about the | 
 | hour of midnight?" | 
 |  | 
 | Tom glanced at Injun Joe's iron face and his tongue failed him. The | 
 | audience listened breathless, but the words refused to come. After a | 
 | few moments, however, the boy got a little of his strength back, and | 
 | managed to put enough of it into his voice to make part of the house | 
 | hear: | 
 |  | 
 | "In the graveyard!" | 
 |  | 
 | "A little bit louder, please. Don't be afraid. You were--" | 
 |  | 
 | "In the graveyard." | 
 |  | 
 | A contemptuous smile flitted across Injun Joe's face. | 
 |  | 
 | "Were you anywhere near Horse Williams' grave?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, sir." | 
 |  | 
 | "Speak up--just a trifle louder. How near were you?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Near as I am to you." | 
 |  | 
 | "Were you hidden, or not?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I was hid." | 
 |  | 
 | "Where?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Behind the elms that's on the edge of the grave." | 
 |  | 
 | Injun Joe gave a barely perceptible start. | 
 |  | 
 | "Any one with you?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, sir. I went there with--" | 
 |  | 
 | "Wait--wait a moment. Never mind mentioning your companion's name. We | 
 | will produce him at the proper time. Did you carry anything there with | 
 | you." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom hesitated and looked confused. | 
 |  | 
 | "Speak out, my boy--don't be diffident. The truth is always | 
 | respectable. What did you take there?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Only a--a--dead cat." | 
 |  | 
 | There was a ripple of mirth, which the court checked. | 
 |  | 
 | "We will produce the skeleton of that cat. Now, my boy, tell us | 
 | everything that occurred--tell it in your own way--don't skip anything, | 
 | and don't be afraid." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom began--hesitatingly at first, but as he warmed to his subject his | 
 | words flowed more and more easily; in a little while every sound ceased | 
 | but his own voice; every eye fixed itself upon him; with parted lips | 
 | and bated breath the audience hung upon his words, taking no note of | 
 | time, rapt in the ghastly fascinations of the tale. The strain upon | 
 | pent emotion reached its climax when the boy said: | 
 |  | 
 | "--and as the doctor fetched the board around and Muff Potter fell, | 
 | Injun Joe jumped with the knife and--" | 
 |  | 
 | Crash! Quick as lightning the half-breed sprang for a window, tore his | 
 | way through all opposers, and was gone! | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XXIV | 
 |  | 
 | TOM was a glittering hero once more--the pet of the old, the envy of | 
 | the young. His name even went into immortal print, for the village | 
 | paper magnified him. There were some that believed he would be | 
 | President, yet, if he escaped hanging. | 
 |  | 
 | As usual, the fickle, unreasoning world took Muff Potter to its bosom | 
 | and fondled him as lavishly as it had abused him before. But that sort | 
 | of conduct is to the world's credit; therefore it is not well to find | 
 | fault with it. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom's days were days of splendor and exultation to him, but his nights | 
 | were seasons of horror. Injun Joe infested all his dreams, and always | 
 | with doom in his eye. Hardly any temptation could persuade the boy to | 
 | stir abroad after nightfall. Poor Huck was in the same state of | 
 | wretchedness and terror, for Tom had told the whole story to the lawyer | 
 | the night before the great day of the trial, and Huck was sore afraid | 
 | that his share in the business might leak out, yet, notwithstanding | 
 | Injun Joe's flight had saved him the suffering of testifying in court. | 
 | The poor fellow had got the attorney to promise secrecy, but what of | 
 | that? Since Tom's harassed conscience had managed to drive him to the | 
 | lawyer's house by night and wring a dread tale from lips that had been | 
 | sealed with the dismalest and most formidable of oaths, Huck's | 
 | confidence in the human race was well-nigh obliterated. | 
 |  | 
 | Daily Muff Potter's gratitude made Tom glad he had spoken; but nightly | 
 | he wished he had sealed up his tongue. | 
 |  | 
 | Half the time Tom was afraid Injun Joe would never be captured; the | 
 | other half he was afraid he would be. He felt sure he never could draw | 
 | a safe breath again until that man was dead and he had seen the corpse. | 
 |  | 
 | Rewards had been offered, the country had been scoured, but no Injun | 
 | Joe was found. One of those omniscient and awe-inspiring marvels, a | 
 | detective, came up from St. Louis, moused around, shook his head, | 
 | looked wise, and made that sort of astounding success which members of | 
 | that craft usually achieve. That is to say, he "found a clew." But you | 
 | can't hang a "clew" for murder, and so after that detective had got | 
 | through and gone home, Tom felt just as insecure as he was before. | 
 |  | 
 | The slow days drifted on, and each left behind it a slightly lightened | 
 | weight of apprehension. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XXV | 
 |  | 
 | THERE comes a time in every rightly-constructed boy's life when he has | 
 | a raging desire to go somewhere and dig for hidden treasure. This | 
 | desire suddenly came upon Tom one day. He sallied out to find Joe | 
 | Harper, but failed of success. Next he sought Ben Rogers; he had gone | 
 | fishing. Presently he stumbled upon Huck Finn the Red-Handed. Huck | 
 | would answer. Tom took him to a private place and opened the matter to | 
 | him confidentially. Huck was willing. Huck was always willing to take a | 
 | hand in any enterprise that offered entertainment and required no | 
 | capital, for he had a troublesome superabundance of that sort of time | 
 | which is not money. "Where'll we dig?" said Huck. | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, most anywhere." | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, is it hid all around?" | 
 |  | 
 | "No, indeed it ain't. It's hid in mighty particular places, Huck | 
 | --sometimes on islands, sometimes in rotten chests under the end of a | 
 | limb of an old dead tree, just where the shadow falls at midnight; but | 
 | mostly under the floor in ha'nted houses." | 
 |  | 
 | "Who hides it?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, robbers, of course--who'd you reckon? Sunday-school | 
 | sup'rintendents?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I don't know. If 'twas mine I wouldn't hide it; I'd spend it and have | 
 | a good time." | 
 |  | 
 | "So would I. But robbers don't do that way. They always hide it and | 
 | leave it there." | 
 |  | 
 | "Don't they come after it any more?" | 
 |  | 
 | "No, they think they will, but they generally forget the marks, or | 
 | else they die. Anyway, it lays there a long time and gets rusty; and by | 
 | and by somebody finds an old yellow paper that tells how to find the | 
 | marks--a paper that's got to be ciphered over about a week because it's | 
 | mostly signs and hy'roglyphics." | 
 |  | 
 | "Hyro--which?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Hy'roglyphics--pictures and things, you know, that don't seem to mean | 
 | anything." | 
 |  | 
 | "Have you got one of them papers, Tom?" | 
 |  | 
 | "No." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well then, how you going to find the marks?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I don't want any marks. They always bury it under a ha'nted house or | 
 | on an island, or under a dead tree that's got one limb sticking out. | 
 | Well, we've tried Jackson's Island a little, and we can try it again | 
 | some time; and there's the old ha'nted house up the Still-House branch, | 
 | and there's lots of dead-limb trees--dead loads of 'em." | 
 |  | 
 | "Is it under all of them?" | 
 |  | 
 | "How you talk! No!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Then how you going to know which one to go for?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Go for all of 'em!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, Tom, it'll take all summer." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, what of that? Suppose you find a brass pot with a hundred | 
 | dollars in it, all rusty and gray, or rotten chest full of di'monds. | 
 | How's that?" | 
 |  | 
 | Huck's eyes glowed. | 
 |  | 
 | "That's bully. Plenty bully enough for me. Just you gimme the hundred | 
 | dollars and I don't want no di'monds." | 
 |  | 
 | "All right. But I bet you I ain't going to throw off on di'monds. Some | 
 | of 'em's worth twenty dollars apiece--there ain't any, hardly, but's | 
 | worth six bits or a dollar." | 
 |  | 
 | "No! Is that so?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Cert'nly--anybody'll tell you so. Hain't you ever seen one, Huck?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Not as I remember." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, kings have slathers of them." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I don' know no kings, Tom." | 
 |  | 
 | "I reckon you don't. But if you was to go to Europe you'd see a raft | 
 | of 'em hopping around." | 
 |  | 
 | "Do they hop?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Hop?--your granny! No!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, what did you say they did, for?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Shucks, I only meant you'd SEE 'em--not hopping, of course--what do | 
 | they want to hop for?--but I mean you'd just see 'em--scattered around, | 
 | you know, in a kind of a general way. Like that old humpbacked Richard." | 
 |  | 
 | "Richard? What's his other name?" | 
 |  | 
 | "He didn't have any other name. Kings don't have any but a given name." | 
 |  | 
 | "No?" | 
 |  | 
 | "But they don't." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, if they like it, Tom, all right; but I don't want to be a king | 
 | and have only just a given name, like a nigger. But say--where you | 
 | going to dig first?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I don't know. S'pose we tackle that old dead-limb tree on the | 
 | hill t'other side of Still-House branch?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I'm agreed." | 
 |  | 
 | So they got a crippled pick and a shovel, and set out on their | 
 | three-mile tramp. They arrived hot and panting, and threw themselves | 
 | down in the shade of a neighboring elm to rest and have a smoke. | 
 |  | 
 | "I like this," said Tom. | 
 |  | 
 | "So do I." | 
 |  | 
 | "Say, Huck, if we find a treasure here, what you going to do with your | 
 | share?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I'll have pie and a glass of soda every day, and I'll go to | 
 | every circus that comes along. I bet I'll have a gay time." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, ain't you going to save any of it?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Save it? What for?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, so as to have something to live on, by and by." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, that ain't any use. Pap would come back to thish-yer town some | 
 | day and get his claws on it if I didn't hurry up, and I tell you he'd | 
 | clean it out pretty quick. What you going to do with yourn, Tom?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I'm going to buy a new drum, and a sure-'nough sword, and a red | 
 | necktie and a bull pup, and get married." | 
 |  | 
 | "Married!" | 
 |  | 
 | "That's it." | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, you--why, you ain't in your right mind." | 
 |  | 
 | "Wait--you'll see." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, that's the foolishest thing you could do. Look at pap and my | 
 | mother. Fight! Why, they used to fight all the time. I remember, mighty | 
 | well." | 
 |  | 
 | "That ain't anything. The girl I'm going to marry won't fight." | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, I reckon they're all alike. They'll all comb a body. Now you | 
 | better think 'bout this awhile. I tell you you better. What's the name | 
 | of the gal?" | 
 |  | 
 | "It ain't a gal at all--it's a girl." | 
 |  | 
 | "It's all the same, I reckon; some says gal, some says girl--both's | 
 | right, like enough. Anyway, what's her name, Tom?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I'll tell you some time--not now." | 
 |  | 
 | "All right--that'll do. Only if you get married I'll be more lonesomer | 
 | than ever." | 
 |  | 
 | "No you won't. You'll come and live with me. Now stir out of this and | 
 | we'll go to digging." | 
 |  | 
 | They worked and sweated for half an hour. No result. They toiled | 
 | another half-hour. Still no result. Huck said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Do they always bury it as deep as this?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Sometimes--not always. Not generally. I reckon we haven't got the | 
 | right place." | 
 |  | 
 | So they chose a new spot and began again. The labor dragged a little, | 
 | but still they made progress. They pegged away in silence for some | 
 | time. Finally Huck leaned on his shovel, swabbed the beaded drops from | 
 | his brow with his sleeve, and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Where you going to dig next, after we get this one?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I reckon maybe we'll tackle the old tree that's over yonder on | 
 | Cardiff Hill back of the widow's." | 
 |  | 
 | "I reckon that'll be a good one. But won't the widow take it away from | 
 | us, Tom? It's on her land." | 
 |  | 
 | "SHE take it away! Maybe she'd like to try it once. Whoever finds one | 
 | of these hid treasures, it belongs to him. It don't make any difference | 
 | whose land it's on." | 
 |  | 
 | That was satisfactory. The work went on. By and by Huck said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Blame it, we must be in the wrong place again. What do you think?" | 
 |  | 
 | "It is mighty curious, Huck. I don't understand it. Sometimes witches | 
 | interfere. I reckon maybe that's what's the trouble now." | 
 |  | 
 | "Shucks! Witches ain't got no power in the daytime." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, that's so. I didn't think of that. Oh, I know what the matter | 
 | is! What a blamed lot of fools we are! You got to find out where the | 
 | shadow of the limb falls at midnight, and that's where you dig!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Then consound it, we've fooled away all this work for nothing. Now | 
 | hang it all, we got to come back in the night. It's an awful long way. | 
 | Can you get out?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I bet I will. We've got to do it to-night, too, because if somebody | 
 | sees these holes they'll know in a minute what's here and they'll go | 
 | for it." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I'll come around and maow to-night." | 
 |  | 
 | "All right. Let's hide the tools in the bushes." | 
 |  | 
 | The boys were there that night, about the appointed time. They sat in | 
 | the shadow waiting. It was a lonely place, and an hour made solemn by | 
 | old traditions. Spirits whispered in the rustling leaves, ghosts lurked | 
 | in the murky nooks, the deep baying of a hound floated up out of the | 
 | distance, an owl answered with his sepulchral note. The boys were | 
 | subdued by these solemnities, and talked little. By and by they judged | 
 | that twelve had come; they marked where the shadow fell, and began to | 
 | dig. Their hopes commenced to rise. Their interest grew stronger, and | 
 | their industry kept pace with it. The hole deepened and still deepened, | 
 | but every time their hearts jumped to hear the pick strike upon | 
 | something, they only suffered a new disappointment. It was only a stone | 
 | or a chunk. At last Tom said: | 
 |  | 
 | "It ain't any use, Huck, we're wrong again." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, but we CAN'T be wrong. We spotted the shadder to a dot." | 
 |  | 
 | "I know it, but then there's another thing." | 
 |  | 
 | "What's that?". | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, we only guessed at the time. Like enough it was too late or too | 
 | early." | 
 |  | 
 | Huck dropped his shovel. | 
 |  | 
 | "That's it," said he. "That's the very trouble. We got to give this | 
 | one up. We can't ever tell the right time, and besides this kind of | 
 | thing's too awful, here this time of night with witches and ghosts | 
 | a-fluttering around so. I feel as if something's behind me all the time; | 
 | and I'm afeard to turn around, becuz maybe there's others in front | 
 | a-waiting for a chance. I been creeping all over, ever since I got here." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I've been pretty much so, too, Huck. They most always put in a | 
 | dead man when they bury a treasure under a tree, to look out for it." | 
 |  | 
 | "Lordy!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, they do. I've always heard that." | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, I don't like to fool around much where there's dead people. A | 
 | body's bound to get into trouble with 'em, sure." | 
 |  | 
 | "I don't like to stir 'em up, either. S'pose this one here was to | 
 | stick his skull out and say something!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Don't Tom! It's awful." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, it just is. Huck, I don't feel comfortable a bit." | 
 |  | 
 | "Say, Tom, let's give this place up, and try somewheres else." | 
 |  | 
 | "All right, I reckon we better." | 
 |  | 
 | "What'll it be?" | 
 |  | 
 | Tom considered awhile; and then said: | 
 |  | 
 | "The ha'nted house. That's it!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Blame it, I don't like ha'nted houses, Tom. Why, they're a dern sight | 
 | worse'n dead people. Dead people might talk, maybe, but they don't come | 
 | sliding around in a shroud, when you ain't noticing, and peep over your | 
 | shoulder all of a sudden and grit their teeth, the way a ghost does. I | 
 | couldn't stand such a thing as that, Tom--nobody could." | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, but, Huck, ghosts don't travel around only at night. They won't | 
 | hender us from digging there in the daytime." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, that's so. But you know mighty well people don't go about that | 
 | ha'nted house in the day nor the night." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, that's mostly because they don't like to go where a man's been | 
 | murdered, anyway--but nothing's ever been seen around that house except | 
 | in the night--just some blue lights slipping by the windows--no regular | 
 | ghosts." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, where you see one of them blue lights flickering around, Tom, | 
 | you can bet there's a ghost mighty close behind it. It stands to | 
 | reason. Becuz you know that they don't anybody but ghosts use 'em." | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, that's so. But anyway they don't come around in the daytime, so | 
 | what's the use of our being afeard?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, all right. We'll tackle the ha'nted house if you say so--but I | 
 | reckon it's taking chances." | 
 |  | 
 | They had started down the hill by this time. There in the middle of | 
 | the moonlit valley below them stood the "ha'nted" house, utterly | 
 | isolated, its fences gone long ago, rank weeds smothering the very | 
 | doorsteps, the chimney crumbled to ruin, the window-sashes vacant, a | 
 | corner of the roof caved in. The boys gazed awhile, half expecting to | 
 | see a blue light flit past a window; then talking in a low tone, as | 
 | befitted the time and the circumstances, they struck far off to the | 
 | right, to give the haunted house a wide berth, and took their way | 
 | homeward through the woods that adorned the rearward side of Cardiff | 
 | Hill. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XXVI | 
 |  | 
 | ABOUT noon the next day the boys arrived at the dead tree; they had | 
 | come for their tools. Tom was impatient to go to the haunted house; | 
 | Huck was measurably so, also--but suddenly said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Lookyhere, Tom, do you know what day it is?" | 
 |  | 
 | Tom mentally ran over the days of the week, and then quickly lifted | 
 | his eyes with a startled look in them-- | 
 |  | 
 | "My! I never once thought of it, Huck!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I didn't neither, but all at once it popped onto me that it was | 
 | Friday." | 
 |  | 
 | "Blame it, a body can't be too careful, Huck. We might 'a' got into an | 
 | awful scrape, tackling such a thing on a Friday." | 
 |  | 
 | "MIGHT! Better say we WOULD! There's some lucky days, maybe, but | 
 | Friday ain't." | 
 |  | 
 | "Any fool knows that. I don't reckon YOU was the first that found it | 
 | out, Huck." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I never said I was, did I? And Friday ain't all, neither. I had | 
 | a rotten bad dream last night--dreampt about rats." | 
 |  | 
 | "No! Sure sign of trouble. Did they fight?" | 
 |  | 
 | "No." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, that's good, Huck. When they don't fight it's only a sign that | 
 | there's trouble around, you know. All we got to do is to look mighty | 
 | sharp and keep out of it. We'll drop this thing for to-day, and play. | 
 | Do you know Robin Hood, Huck?" | 
 |  | 
 | "No. Who's Robin Hood?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, he was one of the greatest men that was ever in England--and the | 
 | best. He was a robber." | 
 |  | 
 | "Cracky, I wisht I was. Who did he rob?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Only sheriffs and bishops and rich people and kings, and such like. | 
 | But he never bothered the poor. He loved 'em. He always divided up with | 
 | 'em perfectly square." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, he must 'a' been a brick." | 
 |  | 
 | "I bet you he was, Huck. Oh, he was the noblest man that ever was. | 
 | They ain't any such men now, I can tell you. He could lick any man in | 
 | England, with one hand tied behind him; and he could take his yew bow | 
 | and plug a ten-cent piece every time, a mile and a half." | 
 |  | 
 | "What's a YEW bow?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I don't know. It's some kind of a bow, of course. And if he hit that | 
 | dime only on the edge he would set down and cry--and curse. But we'll | 
 | play Robin Hood--it's nobby fun. I'll learn you." | 
 |  | 
 | "I'm agreed." | 
 |  | 
 | So they played Robin Hood all the afternoon, now and then casting a | 
 | yearning eye down upon the haunted house and passing a remark about the | 
 | morrow's prospects and possibilities there. As the sun began to sink | 
 | into the west they took their way homeward athwart the long shadows of | 
 | the trees and soon were buried from sight in the forests of Cardiff | 
 | Hill. | 
 |  | 
 | On Saturday, shortly after noon, the boys were at the dead tree again. | 
 | They had a smoke and a chat in the shade, and then dug a little in | 
 | their last hole, not with great hope, but merely because Tom said there | 
 | were so many cases where people had given up a treasure after getting | 
 | down within six inches of it, and then somebody else had come along and | 
 | turned it up with a single thrust of a shovel. The thing failed this | 
 | time, however, so the boys shouldered their tools and went away feeling | 
 | that they had not trifled with fortune, but had fulfilled all the | 
 | requirements that belong to the business of treasure-hunting. | 
 |  | 
 | When they reached the haunted house there was something so weird and | 
 | grisly about the dead silence that reigned there under the baking sun, | 
 | and something so depressing about the loneliness and desolation of the | 
 | place, that they were afraid, for a moment, to venture in. Then they | 
 | crept to the door and took a trembling peep. They saw a weed-grown, | 
 | floorless room, unplastered, an ancient fireplace, vacant windows, a | 
 | ruinous staircase; and here, there, and everywhere hung ragged and | 
 | abandoned cobwebs. They presently entered, softly, with quickened | 
 | pulses, talking in whispers, ears alert to catch the slightest sound, | 
 | and muscles tense and ready for instant retreat. | 
 |  | 
 | In a little while familiarity modified their fears and they gave the | 
 | place a critical and interested examination, rather admiring their own | 
 | boldness, and wondering at it, too. Next they wanted to look up-stairs. | 
 | This was something like cutting off retreat, but they got to daring | 
 | each other, and of course there could be but one result--they threw | 
 | their tools into a corner and made the ascent. Up there were the same | 
 | signs of decay. In one corner they found a closet that promised | 
 | mystery, but the promise was a fraud--there was nothing in it. Their | 
 | courage was up now and well in hand. They were about to go down and | 
 | begin work when-- | 
 |  | 
 | "Sh!" said Tom. | 
 |  | 
 | "What is it?" whispered Huck, blanching with fright. | 
 |  | 
 | "Sh!... There!... Hear it?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes!... Oh, my! Let's run!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Keep still! Don't you budge! They're coming right toward the door." | 
 |  | 
 | The boys stretched themselves upon the floor with their eyes to | 
 | knot-holes in the planking, and lay waiting, in a misery of fear. | 
 |  | 
 | "They've stopped.... No--coming.... Here they are. Don't whisper | 
 | another word, Huck. My goodness, I wish I was out of this!" | 
 |  | 
 | Two men entered. Each boy said to himself: "There's the old deaf and | 
 | dumb Spaniard that's been about town once or twice lately--never saw | 
 | t'other man before." | 
 |  | 
 | "T'other" was a ragged, unkempt creature, with nothing very pleasant | 
 | in his face. The Spaniard was wrapped in a serape; he had bushy white | 
 | whiskers; long white hair flowed from under his sombrero, and he wore | 
 | green goggles. When they came in, "t'other" was talking in a low voice; | 
 | they sat down on the ground, facing the door, with their backs to the | 
 | wall, and the speaker continued his remarks. His manner became less | 
 | guarded and his words more distinct as he proceeded: | 
 |  | 
 | "No," said he, "I've thought it all over, and I don't like it. It's | 
 | dangerous." | 
 |  | 
 | "Dangerous!" grunted the "deaf and dumb" Spaniard--to the vast | 
 | surprise of the boys. "Milksop!" | 
 |  | 
 | This voice made the boys gasp and quake. It was Injun Joe's! There was | 
 | silence for some time. Then Joe said: | 
 |  | 
 | "What's any more dangerous than that job up yonder--but nothing's come | 
 | of it." | 
 |  | 
 | "That's different. Away up the river so, and not another house about. | 
 | 'Twon't ever be known that we tried, anyway, long as we didn't succeed." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, what's more dangerous than coming here in the daytime!--anybody | 
 | would suspicion us that saw us." | 
 |  | 
 | "I know that. But there warn't any other place as handy after that | 
 | fool of a job. I want to quit this shanty. I wanted to yesterday, only | 
 | it warn't any use trying to stir out of here, with those infernal boys | 
 | playing over there on the hill right in full view." | 
 |  | 
 | "Those infernal boys" quaked again under the inspiration of this | 
 | remark, and thought how lucky it was that they had remembered it was | 
 | Friday and concluded to wait a day. They wished in their hearts they | 
 | had waited a year. | 
 |  | 
 | The two men got out some food and made a luncheon. After a long and | 
 | thoughtful silence, Injun Joe said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Look here, lad--you go back up the river where you belong. Wait there | 
 | till you hear from me. I'll take the chances on dropping into this town | 
 | just once more, for a look. We'll do that 'dangerous' job after I've | 
 | spied around a little and think things look well for it. Then for | 
 | Texas! We'll leg it together!" | 
 |  | 
 | This was satisfactory. Both men presently fell to yawning, and Injun | 
 | Joe said: | 
 |  | 
 | "I'm dead for sleep! It's your turn to watch." | 
 |  | 
 | He curled down in the weeds and soon began to snore. His comrade | 
 | stirred him once or twice and he became quiet. Presently the watcher | 
 | began to nod; his head drooped lower and lower, both men began to snore | 
 | now. | 
 |  | 
 | The boys drew a long, grateful breath. Tom whispered: | 
 |  | 
 | "Now's our chance--come!" | 
 |  | 
 | Huck said: | 
 |  | 
 | "I can't--I'd die if they was to wake." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom urged--Huck held back. At last Tom rose slowly and softly, and | 
 | started alone. But the first step he made wrung such a hideous creak | 
 | from the crazy floor that he sank down almost dead with fright. He | 
 | never made a second attempt. The boys lay there counting the dragging | 
 | moments till it seemed to them that time must be done and eternity | 
 | growing gray; and then they were grateful to note that at last the sun | 
 | was setting. | 
 |  | 
 | Now one snore ceased. Injun Joe sat up, stared around--smiled grimly | 
 | upon his comrade, whose head was drooping upon his knees--stirred him | 
 | up with his foot and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Here! YOU'RE a watchman, ain't you! All right, though--nothing's | 
 | happened." | 
 |  | 
 | "My! have I been asleep?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, partly, partly. Nearly time for us to be moving, pard. What'll we | 
 | do with what little swag we've got left?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I don't know--leave it here as we've always done, I reckon. No use to | 
 | take it away till we start south. Six hundred and fifty in silver's | 
 | something to carry." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well--all right--it won't matter to come here once more." | 
 |  | 
 | "No--but I'd say come in the night as we used to do--it's better." | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes: but look here; it may be a good while before I get the right | 
 | chance at that job; accidents might happen; 'tain't in such a very good | 
 | place; we'll just regularly bury it--and bury it deep." | 
 |  | 
 | "Good idea," said the comrade, who walked across the room, knelt down, | 
 | raised one of the rearward hearth-stones and took out a bag that | 
 | jingled pleasantly. He subtracted from it twenty or thirty dollars for | 
 | himself and as much for Injun Joe, and passed the bag to the latter, | 
 | who was on his knees in the corner, now, digging with his bowie-knife. | 
 |  | 
 | The boys forgot all their fears, all their miseries in an instant. | 
 | With gloating eyes they watched every movement. Luck!--the splendor of | 
 | it was beyond all imagination! Six hundred dollars was money enough to | 
 | make half a dozen boys rich! Here was treasure-hunting under the | 
 | happiest auspices--there would not be any bothersome uncertainty as to | 
 | where to dig. They nudged each other every moment--eloquent nudges and | 
 | easily understood, for they simply meant--"Oh, but ain't you glad NOW | 
 | we're here!" | 
 |  | 
 | Joe's knife struck upon something. | 
 |  | 
 | "Hello!" said he. | 
 |  | 
 | "What is it?" said his comrade. | 
 |  | 
 | "Half-rotten plank--no, it's a box, I believe. Here--bear a hand and | 
 | we'll see what it's here for. Never mind, I've broke a hole." | 
 |  | 
 | He reached his hand in and drew it out-- | 
 |  | 
 | "Man, it's money!" | 
 |  | 
 | The two men examined the handful of coins. They were gold. The boys | 
 | above were as excited as themselves, and as delighted. | 
 |  | 
 | Joe's comrade said: | 
 |  | 
 | "We'll make quick work of this. There's an old rusty pick over amongst | 
 | the weeds in the corner the other side of the fireplace--I saw it a | 
 | minute ago." | 
 |  | 
 | He ran and brought the boys' pick and shovel. Injun Joe took the pick, | 
 | looked it over critically, shook his head, muttered something to | 
 | himself, and then began to use it. The box was soon unearthed. It was | 
 | not very large; it was iron bound and had been very strong before the | 
 | slow years had injured it. The men contemplated the treasure awhile in | 
 | blissful silence. | 
 |  | 
 | "Pard, there's thousands of dollars here," said Injun Joe. | 
 |  | 
 | "'Twas always said that Murrel's gang used to be around here one | 
 | summer," the stranger observed. | 
 |  | 
 | "I know it," said Injun Joe; "and this looks like it, I should say." | 
 |  | 
 | "Now you won't need to do that job." | 
 |  | 
 | The half-breed frowned. Said he: | 
 |  | 
 | "You don't know me. Least you don't know all about that thing. 'Tain't | 
 | robbery altogether--it's REVENGE!" and a wicked light flamed in his | 
 | eyes. "I'll need your help in it. When it's finished--then Texas. Go | 
 | home to your Nance and your kids, and stand by till you hear from me." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well--if you say so; what'll we do with this--bury it again?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes. [Ravishing delight overhead.] NO! by the great Sachem, no! | 
 | [Profound distress overhead.] I'd nearly forgot. That pick had fresh | 
 | earth on it! [The boys were sick with terror in a moment.] What | 
 | business has a pick and a shovel here? What business with fresh earth | 
 | on them? Who brought them here--and where are they gone? Have you heard | 
 | anybody?--seen anybody? What! bury it again and leave them to come and | 
 | see the ground disturbed? Not exactly--not exactly. We'll take it to my | 
 | den." | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, of course! Might have thought of that before. You mean Number | 
 | One?" | 
 |  | 
 | "No--Number Two--under the cross. The other place is bad--too common." | 
 |  | 
 | "All right. It's nearly dark enough to start." | 
 |  | 
 | Injun Joe got up and went about from window to window cautiously | 
 | peeping out. Presently he said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Who could have brought those tools here? Do you reckon they can be | 
 | up-stairs?" | 
 |  | 
 | The boys' breath forsook them. Injun Joe put his hand on his knife, | 
 | halted a moment, undecided, and then turned toward the stairway. The | 
 | boys thought of the closet, but their strength was gone. The steps came | 
 | creaking up the stairs--the intolerable distress of the situation woke | 
 | the stricken resolution of the lads--they were about to spring for the | 
 | closet, when there was a crash of rotten timbers and Injun Joe landed | 
 | on the ground amid the debris of the ruined stairway. He gathered | 
 | himself up cursing, and his comrade said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Now what's the use of all that? If it's anybody, and they're up | 
 | there, let them STAY there--who cares? If they want to jump down, now, | 
 | and get into trouble, who objects? It will be dark in fifteen minutes | 
 | --and then let them follow us if they want to. I'm willing. In my | 
 | opinion, whoever hove those things in here caught a sight of us and | 
 | took us for ghosts or devils or something. I'll bet they're running | 
 | yet." | 
 |  | 
 | Joe grumbled awhile; then he agreed with his friend that what daylight | 
 | was left ought to be economized in getting things ready for leaving. | 
 | Shortly afterward they slipped out of the house in the deepening | 
 | twilight, and moved toward the river with their precious box. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom and Huck rose up, weak but vastly relieved, and stared after them | 
 | through the chinks between the logs of the house. Follow? Not they. | 
 | They were content to reach ground again without broken necks, and take | 
 | the townward track over the hill. They did not talk much. They were too | 
 | much absorbed in hating themselves--hating the ill luck that made them | 
 | take the spade and the pick there. But for that, Injun Joe never would | 
 | have suspected. He would have hidden the silver with the gold to wait | 
 | there till his "revenge" was satisfied, and then he would have had the | 
 | misfortune to find that money turn up missing. Bitter, bitter luck that | 
 | the tools were ever brought there! | 
 |  | 
 | They resolved to keep a lookout for that Spaniard when he should come | 
 | to town spying out for chances to do his revengeful job, and follow him | 
 | to "Number Two," wherever that might be. Then a ghastly thought | 
 | occurred to Tom. | 
 |  | 
 | "Revenge? What if he means US, Huck!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, don't!" said Huck, nearly fainting. | 
 |  | 
 | They talked it all over, and as they entered town they agreed to | 
 | believe that he might possibly mean somebody else--at least that he | 
 | might at least mean nobody but Tom, since only Tom had testified. | 
 |  | 
 | Very, very small comfort it was to Tom to be alone in danger! Company | 
 | would be a palpable improvement, he thought. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XXVII | 
 |  | 
 | THE adventure of the day mightily tormented Tom's dreams that night. | 
 | Four times he had his hands on that rich treasure and four times it | 
 | wasted to nothingness in his fingers as sleep forsook him and | 
 | wakefulness brought back the hard reality of his misfortune. As he lay | 
 | in the early morning recalling the incidents of his great adventure, he | 
 | noticed that they seemed curiously subdued and far away--somewhat as if | 
 | they had happened in another world, or in a time long gone by. Then it | 
 | occurred to him that the great adventure itself must be a dream! There | 
 | was one very strong argument in favor of this idea--namely, that the | 
 | quantity of coin he had seen was too vast to be real. He had never seen | 
 | as much as fifty dollars in one mass before, and he was like all boys | 
 | of his age and station in life, in that he imagined that all references | 
 | to "hundreds" and "thousands" were mere fanciful forms of speech, and | 
 | that no such sums really existed in the world. He never had supposed | 
 | for a moment that so large a sum as a hundred dollars was to be found | 
 | in actual money in any one's possession. If his notions of hidden | 
 | treasure had been analyzed, they would have been found to consist of a | 
 | handful of real dimes and a bushel of vague, splendid, ungraspable | 
 | dollars. | 
 |  | 
 | But the incidents of his adventure grew sensibly sharper and clearer | 
 | under the attrition of thinking them over, and so he presently found | 
 | himself leaning to the impression that the thing might not have been a | 
 | dream, after all. This uncertainty must be swept away. He would snatch | 
 | a hurried breakfast and go and find Huck. Huck was sitting on the | 
 | gunwale of a flatboat, listlessly dangling his feet in the water and | 
 | looking very melancholy. Tom concluded to let Huck lead up to the | 
 | subject. If he did not do it, then the adventure would be proved to | 
 | have been only a dream. | 
 |  | 
 | "Hello, Huck!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Hello, yourself." | 
 |  | 
 | Silence, for a minute. | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, if we'd 'a' left the blame tools at the dead tree, we'd 'a' got | 
 | the money. Oh, ain't it awful!" | 
 |  | 
 | "'Tain't a dream, then, 'tain't a dream! Somehow I most wish it was. | 
 | Dog'd if I don't, Huck." | 
 |  | 
 | "What ain't a dream?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, that thing yesterday. I been half thinking it was." | 
 |  | 
 | "Dream! If them stairs hadn't broke down you'd 'a' seen how much dream | 
 | it was! I've had dreams enough all night--with that patch-eyed Spanish | 
 | devil going for me all through 'em--rot him!" | 
 |  | 
 | "No, not rot him. FIND him! Track the money!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, we'll never find him. A feller don't have only one chance for | 
 | such a pile--and that one's lost. I'd feel mighty shaky if I was to see | 
 | him, anyway." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, so'd I; but I'd like to see him, anyway--and track him out--to | 
 | his Number Two." | 
 |  | 
 | "Number Two--yes, that's it. I been thinking 'bout that. But I can't | 
 | make nothing out of it. What do you reckon it is?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I dono. It's too deep. Say, Huck--maybe it's the number of a house!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Goody!... No, Tom, that ain't it. If it is, it ain't in this | 
 | one-horse town. They ain't no numbers here." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, that's so. Lemme think a minute. Here--it's the number of a | 
 | room--in a tavern, you know!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, that's the trick! They ain't only two taverns. We can find out | 
 | quick." | 
 |  | 
 | "You stay here, Huck, till I come." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom was off at once. He did not care to have Huck's company in public | 
 | places. He was gone half an hour. He found that in the best tavern, No. | 
 | 2 had long been occupied by a young lawyer, and was still so occupied. | 
 | In the less ostentatious house, No. 2 was a mystery. The | 
 | tavern-keeper's young son said it was kept locked all the time, and he | 
 | never saw anybody go into it or come out of it except at night; he did | 
 | not know any particular reason for this state of things; had had some | 
 | little curiosity, but it was rather feeble; had made the most of the | 
 | mystery by entertaining himself with the idea that that room was | 
 | "ha'nted"; had noticed that there was a light in there the night before. | 
 |  | 
 | "That's what I've found out, Huck. I reckon that's the very No. 2 | 
 | we're after." | 
 |  | 
 | "I reckon it is, Tom. Now what you going to do?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Lemme think." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom thought a long time. Then he said: | 
 |  | 
 | "I'll tell you. The back door of that No. 2 is the door that comes out | 
 | into that little close alley between the tavern and the old rattle trap | 
 | of a brick store. Now you get hold of all the door-keys you can find, | 
 | and I'll nip all of auntie's, and the first dark night we'll go there | 
 | and try 'em. And mind you, keep a lookout for Injun Joe, because he | 
 | said he was going to drop into town and spy around once more for a | 
 | chance to get his revenge. If you see him, you just follow him; and if | 
 | he don't go to that No. 2, that ain't the place." | 
 |  | 
 | "Lordy, I don't want to foller him by myself!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, it'll be night, sure. He mightn't ever see you--and if he did, | 
 | maybe he'd never think anything." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, if it's pretty dark I reckon I'll track him. I dono--I dono. | 
 | I'll try." | 
 |  | 
 | "You bet I'll follow him, if it's dark, Huck. Why, he might 'a' found | 
 | out he couldn't get his revenge, and be going right after that money." | 
 |  | 
 | "It's so, Tom, it's so. I'll foller him; I will, by jingoes!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Now you're TALKING! Don't you ever weaken, Huck, and I won't." | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XXVIII | 
 |  | 
 | THAT night Tom and Huck were ready for their adventure. They hung | 
 | about the neighborhood of the tavern until after nine, one watching the | 
 | alley at a distance and the other the tavern door. Nobody entered the | 
 | alley or left it; nobody resembling the Spaniard entered or left the | 
 | tavern door. The night promised to be a fair one; so Tom went home with | 
 | the understanding that if a considerable degree of darkness came on, | 
 | Huck was to come and "maow," whereupon he would slip out and try the | 
 | keys. But the night remained clear, and Huck closed his watch and | 
 | retired to bed in an empty sugar hogshead about twelve. | 
 |  | 
 | Tuesday the boys had the same ill luck. Also Wednesday. But Thursday | 
 | night promised better. Tom slipped out in good season with his aunt's | 
 | old tin lantern, and a large towel to blindfold it with. He hid the | 
 | lantern in Huck's sugar hogshead and the watch began. An hour before | 
 | midnight the tavern closed up and its lights (the only ones | 
 | thereabouts) were put out. No Spaniard had been seen. Nobody had | 
 | entered or left the alley. Everything was auspicious. The blackness of | 
 | darkness reigned, the perfect stillness was interrupted only by | 
 | occasional mutterings of distant thunder. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom got his lantern, lit it in the hogshead, wrapped it closely in the | 
 | towel, and the two adventurers crept in the gloom toward the tavern. | 
 | Huck stood sentry and Tom felt his way into the alley. Then there was a | 
 | season of waiting anxiety that weighed upon Huck's spirits like a | 
 | mountain. He began to wish he could see a flash from the lantern--it | 
 | would frighten him, but it would at least tell him that Tom was alive | 
 | yet. It seemed hours since Tom had disappeared. Surely he must have | 
 | fainted; maybe he was dead; maybe his heart had burst under terror and | 
 | excitement. In his uneasiness Huck found himself drawing closer and | 
 | closer to the alley; fearing all sorts of dreadful things, and | 
 | momentarily expecting some catastrophe to happen that would take away | 
 | his breath. There was not much to take away, for he seemed only able to | 
 | inhale it by thimblefuls, and his heart would soon wear itself out, the | 
 | way it was beating. Suddenly there was a flash of light and Tom came | 
 | tearing by him: "Run!" said he; "run, for your life!" | 
 |  | 
 | He needn't have repeated it; once was enough; Huck was making thirty | 
 | or forty miles an hour before the repetition was uttered. The boys | 
 | never stopped till they reached the shed of a deserted slaughter-house | 
 | at the lower end of the village. Just as they got within its shelter | 
 | the storm burst and the rain poured down. As soon as Tom got his breath | 
 | he said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Huck, it was awful! I tried two of the keys, just as soft as I could; | 
 | but they seemed to make such a power of racket that I couldn't hardly | 
 | get my breath I was so scared. They wouldn't turn in the lock, either. | 
 | Well, without noticing what I was doing, I took hold of the knob, and | 
 | open comes the door! It warn't locked! I hopped in, and shook off the | 
 | towel, and, GREAT CAESAR'S GHOST!" | 
 |  | 
 | "What!--what'd you see, Tom?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Huck, I most stepped onto Injun Joe's hand!" | 
 |  | 
 | "No!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes! He was lying there, sound asleep on the floor, with his old | 
 | patch on his eye and his arms spread out." | 
 |  | 
 | "Lordy, what did you do? Did he wake up?" | 
 |  | 
 | "No, never budged. Drunk, I reckon. I just grabbed that towel and | 
 | started!" | 
 |  | 
 | "I'd never 'a' thought of the towel, I bet!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I would. My aunt would make me mighty sick if I lost it." | 
 |  | 
 | "Say, Tom, did you see that box?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Huck, I didn't wait to look around. I didn't see the box, I didn't | 
 | see the cross. I didn't see anything but a bottle and a tin cup on the | 
 | floor by Injun Joe; yes, I saw two barrels and lots more bottles in the | 
 | room. Don't you see, now, what's the matter with that ha'nted room?" | 
 |  | 
 | "How?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, it's ha'nted with whiskey! Maybe ALL the Temperance Taverns have | 
 | got a ha'nted room, hey, Huck?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I reckon maybe that's so. Who'd 'a' thought such a thing? But | 
 | say, Tom, now's a mighty good time to get that box, if Injun Joe's | 
 | drunk." | 
 |  | 
 | "It is, that! You try it!" | 
 |  | 
 | Huck shuddered. | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, no--I reckon not." | 
 |  | 
 | "And I reckon not, Huck. Only one bottle alongside of Injun Joe ain't | 
 | enough. If there'd been three, he'd be drunk enough and I'd do it." | 
 |  | 
 | There was a long pause for reflection, and then Tom said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Lookyhere, Huck, less not try that thing any more till we know Injun | 
 | Joe's not in there. It's too scary. Now, if we watch every night, we'll | 
 | be dead sure to see him go out, some time or other, and then we'll | 
 | snatch that box quicker'n lightning." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I'm agreed. I'll watch the whole night long, and I'll do it | 
 | every night, too, if you'll do the other part of the job." | 
 |  | 
 | "All right, I will. All you got to do is to trot up Hooper Street a | 
 | block and maow--and if I'm asleep, you throw some gravel at the window | 
 | and that'll fetch me." | 
 |  | 
 | "Agreed, and good as wheat!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Now, Huck, the storm's over, and I'll go home. It'll begin to be | 
 | daylight in a couple of hours. You go back and watch that long, will | 
 | you?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I said I would, Tom, and I will. I'll ha'nt that tavern every night | 
 | for a year! I'll sleep all day and I'll stand watch all night." | 
 |  | 
 | "That's all right. Now, where you going to sleep?" | 
 |  | 
 | "In Ben Rogers' hayloft. He lets me, and so does his pap's nigger man, | 
 | Uncle Jake. I tote water for Uncle Jake whenever he wants me to, and | 
 | any time I ask him he gives me a little something to eat if he can | 
 | spare it. That's a mighty good nigger, Tom. He likes me, becuz I don't | 
 | ever act as if I was above him. Sometime I've set right down and eat | 
 | WITH him. But you needn't tell that. A body's got to do things when | 
 | he's awful hungry he wouldn't want to do as a steady thing." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, if I don't want you in the daytime, I'll let you sleep. I won't | 
 | come bothering around. Any time you see something's up, in the night, | 
 | just skip right around and maow." | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XXIX | 
 |  | 
 | THE first thing Tom heard on Friday morning was a glad piece of news | 
 | --Judge Thatcher's family had come back to town the night before. Both | 
 | Injun Joe and the treasure sunk into secondary importance for a moment, | 
 | and Becky took the chief place in the boy's interest. He saw her and | 
 | they had an exhausting good time playing "hi-spy" and "gully-keeper" | 
 | with a crowd of their school-mates. The day was completed and crowned | 
 | in a peculiarly satisfactory way: Becky teased her mother to appoint | 
 | the next day for the long-promised and long-delayed picnic, and she | 
 | consented. The child's delight was boundless; and Tom's not more | 
 | moderate. The invitations were sent out before sunset, and straightway | 
 | the young folks of the village were thrown into a fever of preparation | 
 | and pleasurable anticipation. Tom's excitement enabled him to keep | 
 | awake until a pretty late hour, and he had good hopes of hearing Huck's | 
 | "maow," and of having his treasure to astonish Becky and the picnickers | 
 | with, next day; but he was disappointed. No signal came that night. | 
 |  | 
 | Morning came, eventually, and by ten or eleven o'clock a giddy and | 
 | rollicking company were gathered at Judge Thatcher's, and everything | 
 | was ready for a start. It was not the custom for elderly people to mar | 
 | the picnics with their presence. The children were considered safe | 
 | enough under the wings of a few young ladies of eighteen and a few | 
 | young gentlemen of twenty-three or thereabouts. The old steam ferryboat | 
 | was chartered for the occasion; presently the gay throng filed up the | 
 | main street laden with provision-baskets. Sid was sick and had to miss | 
 | the fun; Mary remained at home to entertain him. The last thing Mrs. | 
 | Thatcher said to Becky, was: | 
 |  | 
 | "You'll not get back till late. Perhaps you'd better stay all night | 
 | with some of the girls that live near the ferry-landing, child." | 
 |  | 
 | "Then I'll stay with Susy Harper, mamma." | 
 |  | 
 | "Very well. And mind and behave yourself and don't be any trouble." | 
 |  | 
 | Presently, as they tripped along, Tom said to Becky: | 
 |  | 
 | "Say--I'll tell you what we'll do. 'Stead of going to Joe Harper's | 
 | we'll climb right up the hill and stop at the Widow Douglas'. She'll | 
 | have ice-cream! She has it most every day--dead loads of it. And she'll | 
 | be awful glad to have us." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, that will be fun!" | 
 |  | 
 | Then Becky reflected a moment and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "But what will mamma say?" | 
 |  | 
 | "How'll she ever know?" | 
 |  | 
 | The girl turned the idea over in her mind, and said reluctantly: | 
 |  | 
 | "I reckon it's wrong--but--" | 
 |  | 
 | "But shucks! Your mother won't know, and so what's the harm? All she | 
 | wants is that you'll be safe; and I bet you she'd 'a' said go there if | 
 | she'd 'a' thought of it. I know she would!" | 
 |  | 
 | The Widow Douglas' splendid hospitality was a tempting bait. It and | 
 | Tom's persuasions presently carried the day. So it was decided to say | 
 | nothing anybody about the night's programme. Presently it occurred to | 
 | Tom that maybe Huck might come this very night and give the signal. The | 
 | thought took a deal of the spirit out of his anticipations. Still he | 
 | could not bear to give up the fun at Widow Douglas'. And why should he | 
 | give it up, he reasoned--the signal did not come the night before, so | 
 | why should it be any more likely to come to-night? The sure fun of the | 
 | evening outweighed the uncertain treasure; and, boy-like, he determined | 
 | to yield to the stronger inclination and not allow himself to think of | 
 | the box of money another time that day. | 
 |  | 
 | Three miles below town the ferryboat stopped at the mouth of a woody | 
 | hollow and tied up. The crowd swarmed ashore and soon the forest | 
 | distances and craggy heights echoed far and near with shoutings and | 
 | laughter. All the different ways of getting hot and tired were gone | 
 | through with, and by-and-by the rovers straggled back to camp fortified | 
 | with responsible appetites, and then the destruction of the good things | 
 | began. After the feast there was a refreshing season of rest and chat | 
 | in the shade of spreading oaks. By-and-by somebody shouted: | 
 |  | 
 | "Who's ready for the cave?" | 
 |  | 
 | Everybody was. Bundles of candles were procured, and straightway there | 
 | was a general scamper up the hill. The mouth of the cave was up the | 
 | hillside--an opening shaped like a letter A. Its massive oaken door | 
 | stood unbarred. Within was a small chamber, chilly as an ice-house, and | 
 | walled by Nature with solid limestone that was dewy with a cold sweat. | 
 | It was romantic and mysterious to stand here in the deep gloom and look | 
 | out upon the green valley shining in the sun. But the impressiveness of | 
 | the situation quickly wore off, and the romping began again. The moment | 
 | a candle was lighted there was a general rush upon the owner of it; a | 
 | struggle and a gallant defence followed, but the candle was soon | 
 | knocked down or blown out, and then there was a glad clamor of laughter | 
 | and a new chase. But all things have an end. By-and-by the procession | 
 | went filing down the steep descent of the main avenue, the flickering | 
 | rank of lights dimly revealing the lofty walls of rock almost to their | 
 | point of junction sixty feet overhead. This main avenue was not more | 
 | than eight or ten feet wide. Every few steps other lofty and still | 
 | narrower crevices branched from it on either hand--for McDougal's cave | 
 | was but a vast labyrinth of crooked aisles that ran into each other and | 
 | out again and led nowhere. It was said that one might wander days and | 
 | nights together through its intricate tangle of rifts and chasms, and | 
 | never find the end of the cave; and that he might go down, and down, | 
 | and still down, into the earth, and it was just the same--labyrinth | 
 | under labyrinth, and no end to any of them. No man "knew" the cave. | 
 | That was an impossible thing. Most of the young men knew a portion of | 
 | it, and it was not customary to venture much beyond this known portion. | 
 | Tom Sawyer knew as much of the cave as any one. | 
 |  | 
 | The procession moved along the main avenue some three-quarters of a | 
 | mile, and then groups and couples began to slip aside into branch | 
 | avenues, fly along the dismal corridors, and take each other by | 
 | surprise at points where the corridors joined again. Parties were able | 
 | to elude each other for the space of half an hour without going beyond | 
 | the "known" ground. | 
 |  | 
 | By-and-by, one group after another came straggling back to the mouth | 
 | of the cave, panting, hilarious, smeared from head to foot with tallow | 
 | drippings, daubed with clay, and entirely delighted with the success of | 
 | the day. Then they were astonished to find that they had been taking no | 
 | note of time and that night was about at hand. The clanging bell had | 
 | been calling for half an hour. However, this sort of close to the day's | 
 | adventures was romantic and therefore satisfactory. When the ferryboat | 
 | with her wild freight pushed into the stream, nobody cared sixpence for | 
 | the wasted time but the captain of the craft. | 
 |  | 
 | Huck was already upon his watch when the ferryboat's lights went | 
 | glinting past the wharf. He heard no noise on board, for the young | 
 | people were as subdued and still as people usually are who are nearly | 
 | tired to death. He wondered what boat it was, and why she did not stop | 
 | at the wharf--and then he dropped her out of his mind and put his | 
 | attention upon his business. The night was growing cloudy and dark. Ten | 
 | o'clock came, and the noise of vehicles ceased, scattered lights began | 
 | to wink out, all straggling foot-passengers disappeared, the village | 
 | betook itself to its slumbers and left the small watcher alone with the | 
 | silence and the ghosts. Eleven o'clock came, and the tavern lights were | 
 | put out; darkness everywhere, now. Huck waited what seemed a weary long | 
 | time, but nothing happened. His faith was weakening. Was there any use? | 
 | Was there really any use? Why not give it up and turn in? | 
 |  | 
 | A noise fell upon his ear. He was all attention in an instant. The | 
 | alley door closed softly. He sprang to the corner of the brick store. | 
 | The next moment two men brushed by him, and one seemed to have | 
 | something under his arm. It must be that box! So they were going to | 
 | remove the treasure. Why call Tom now? It would be absurd--the men | 
 | would get away with the box and never be found again. No, he would | 
 | stick to their wake and follow them; he would trust to the darkness for | 
 | security from discovery. So communing with himself, Huck stepped out | 
 | and glided along behind the men, cat-like, with bare feet, allowing | 
 | them to keep just far enough ahead not to be invisible. | 
 |  | 
 | They moved up the river street three blocks, then turned to the left | 
 | up a cross-street. They went straight ahead, then, until they came to | 
 | the path that led up Cardiff Hill; this they took. They passed by the | 
 | old Welshman's house, half-way up the hill, without hesitating, and | 
 | still climbed upward. Good, thought Huck, they will bury it in the old | 
 | quarry. But they never stopped at the quarry. They passed on, up the | 
 | summit. They plunged into the narrow path between the tall sumach | 
 | bushes, and were at once hidden in the gloom. Huck closed up and | 
 | shortened his distance, now, for they would never be able to see him. | 
 | He trotted along awhile; then slackened his pace, fearing he was | 
 | gaining too fast; moved on a piece, then stopped altogether; listened; | 
 | no sound; none, save that he seemed to hear the beating of his own | 
 | heart. The hooting of an owl came over the hill--ominous sound! But no | 
 | footsteps. Heavens, was everything lost! He was about to spring with | 
 | winged feet, when a man cleared his throat not four feet from him! | 
 | Huck's heart shot into his throat, but he swallowed it again; and then | 
 | he stood there shaking as if a dozen agues had taken charge of him at | 
 | once, and so weak that he thought he must surely fall to the ground. He | 
 | knew where he was. He knew he was within five steps of the stile | 
 | leading into Widow Douglas' grounds. Very well, he thought, let them | 
 | bury it there; it won't be hard to find. | 
 |  | 
 | Now there was a voice--a very low voice--Injun Joe's: | 
 |  | 
 | "Damn her, maybe she's got company--there's lights, late as it is." | 
 |  | 
 | "I can't see any." | 
 |  | 
 | This was that stranger's voice--the stranger of the haunted house. A | 
 | deadly chill went to Huck's heart--this, then, was the "revenge" job! | 
 | His thought was, to fly. Then he remembered that the Widow Douglas had | 
 | been kind to him more than once, and maybe these men were going to | 
 | murder her. He wished he dared venture to warn her; but he knew he | 
 | didn't dare--they might come and catch him. He thought all this and | 
 | more in the moment that elapsed between the stranger's remark and Injun | 
 | Joe's next--which was-- | 
 |  | 
 | "Because the bush is in your way. Now--this way--now you see, don't | 
 | you?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes. Well, there IS company there, I reckon. Better give it up." | 
 |  | 
 | "Give it up, and I just leaving this country forever! Give it up and | 
 | maybe never have another chance. I tell you again, as I've told you | 
 | before, I don't care for her swag--you may have it. But her husband was | 
 | rough on me--many times he was rough on me--and mainly he was the | 
 | justice of the peace that jugged me for a vagrant. And that ain't all. | 
 | It ain't a millionth part of it! He had me HORSEWHIPPED!--horsewhipped | 
 | in front of the jail, like a nigger!--with all the town looking on! | 
 | HORSEWHIPPED!--do you understand? He took advantage of me and died. But | 
 | I'll take it out of HER." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, don't kill her! Don't do that!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Kill? Who said anything about killing? I would kill HIM if he was | 
 | here; but not her. When you want to get revenge on a woman you don't | 
 | kill her--bosh! you go for her looks. You slit her nostrils--you notch | 
 | her ears like a sow!" | 
 |  | 
 | "By God, that's--" | 
 |  | 
 | "Keep your opinion to yourself! It will be safest for you. I'll tie | 
 | her to the bed. If she bleeds to death, is that my fault? I'll not cry, | 
 | if she does. My friend, you'll help me in this thing--for MY sake | 
 | --that's why you're here--I mightn't be able alone. If you flinch, I'll | 
 | kill you. Do you understand that? And if I have to kill you, I'll kill | 
 | her--and then I reckon nobody'll ever know much about who done this | 
 | business." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, if it's got to be done, let's get at it. The quicker the | 
 | better--I'm all in a shiver." | 
 |  | 
 | "Do it NOW? And company there? Look here--I'll get suspicious of you, | 
 | first thing you know. No--we'll wait till the lights are out--there's | 
 | no hurry." | 
 |  | 
 | Huck felt that a silence was going to ensue--a thing still more awful | 
 | than any amount of murderous talk; so he held his breath and stepped | 
 | gingerly back; planted his foot carefully and firmly, after balancing, | 
 | one-legged, in a precarious way and almost toppling over, first on one | 
 | side and then on the other. He took another step back, with the same | 
 | elaboration and the same risks; then another and another, and--a twig | 
 | snapped under his foot! His breath stopped and he listened. There was | 
 | no sound--the stillness was perfect. His gratitude was measureless. Now | 
 | he turned in his tracks, between the walls of sumach bushes--turned | 
 | himself as carefully as if he were a ship--and then stepped quickly but | 
 | cautiously along. When he emerged at the quarry he felt secure, and so | 
 | he picked up his nimble heels and flew. Down, down he sped, till he | 
 | reached the Welshman's. He banged at the door, and presently the heads | 
 | of the old man and his two stalwart sons were thrust from windows. | 
 |  | 
 | "What's the row there? Who's banging? What do you want?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Let me in--quick! I'll tell everything." | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, who are you?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Huckleberry Finn--quick, let me in!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Huckleberry Finn, indeed! It ain't a name to open many doors, I | 
 | judge! But let him in, lads, and let's see what's the trouble." | 
 |  | 
 | "Please don't ever tell I told you," were Huck's first words when he | 
 | got in. "Please don't--I'd be killed, sure--but the widow's been good | 
 | friends to me sometimes, and I want to tell--I WILL tell if you'll | 
 | promise you won't ever say it was me." | 
 |  | 
 | "By George, he HAS got something to tell, or he wouldn't act so!" | 
 | exclaimed the old man; "out with it and nobody here'll ever tell, lad." | 
 |  | 
 | Three minutes later the old man and his sons, well armed, were up the | 
 | hill, and just entering the sumach path on tiptoe, their weapons in | 
 | their hands. Huck accompanied them no further. He hid behind a great | 
 | bowlder and fell to listening. There was a lagging, anxious silence, | 
 | and then all of a sudden there was an explosion of firearms and a cry. | 
 |  | 
 | Huck waited for no particulars. He sprang away and sped down the hill | 
 | as fast as his legs could carry him. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XXX | 
 |  | 
 | AS the earliest suspicion of dawn appeared on Sunday morning, Huck | 
 | came groping up the hill and rapped gently at the old Welshman's door. | 
 | The inmates were asleep, but it was a sleep that was set on a | 
 | hair-trigger, on account of the exciting episode of the night. A call | 
 | came from a window: | 
 |  | 
 | "Who's there!" | 
 |  | 
 | Huck's scared voice answered in a low tone: | 
 |  | 
 | "Please let me in! It's only Huck Finn!" | 
 |  | 
 | "It's a name that can open this door night or day, lad!--and welcome!" | 
 |  | 
 | These were strange words to the vagabond boy's ears, and the | 
 | pleasantest he had ever heard. He could not recollect that the closing | 
 | word had ever been applied in his case before. The door was quickly | 
 | unlocked, and he entered. Huck was given a seat and the old man and his | 
 | brace of tall sons speedily dressed themselves. | 
 |  | 
 | "Now, my boy, I hope you're good and hungry, because breakfast will be | 
 | ready as soon as the sun's up, and we'll have a piping hot one, too | 
 | --make yourself easy about that! I and the boys hoped you'd turn up and | 
 | stop here last night." | 
 |  | 
 | "I was awful scared," said Huck, "and I run. I took out when the | 
 | pistols went off, and I didn't stop for three mile. I've come now becuz | 
 | I wanted to know about it, you know; and I come before daylight becuz I | 
 | didn't want to run across them devils, even if they was dead." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, poor chap, you do look as if you'd had a hard night of it--but | 
 | there's a bed here for you when you've had your breakfast. No, they | 
 | ain't dead, lad--we are sorry enough for that. You see we knew right | 
 | where to put our hands on them, by your description; so we crept along | 
 | on tiptoe till we got within fifteen feet of them--dark as a cellar | 
 | that sumach path was--and just then I found I was going to sneeze. It | 
 | was the meanest kind of luck! I tried to keep it back, but no use | 
 | --'twas bound to come, and it did come! I was in the lead with my pistol | 
 | raised, and when the sneeze started those scoundrels a-rustling to get | 
 | out of the path, I sung out, 'Fire boys!' and blazed away at the place | 
 | where the rustling was. So did the boys. But they were off in a jiffy, | 
 | those villains, and we after them, down through the woods. I judge we | 
 | never touched them. They fired a shot apiece as they started, but their | 
 | bullets whizzed by and didn't do us any harm. As soon as we lost the | 
 | sound of their feet we quit chasing, and went down and stirred up the | 
 | constables. They got a posse together, and went off to guard the river | 
 | bank, and as soon as it is light the sheriff and a gang are going to | 
 | beat up the woods. My boys will be with them presently. I wish we had | 
 | some sort of description of those rascals--'twould help a good deal. | 
 | But you couldn't see what they were like, in the dark, lad, I suppose?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh yes; I saw them down-town and follered them." | 
 |  | 
 | "Splendid! Describe them--describe them, my boy!" | 
 |  | 
 | "One's the old deaf and dumb Spaniard that's ben around here once or | 
 | twice, and t'other's a mean-looking, ragged--" | 
 |  | 
 | "That's enough, lad, we know the men! Happened on them in the woods | 
 | back of the widow's one day, and they slunk away. Off with you, boys, | 
 | and tell the sheriff--get your breakfast to-morrow morning!" | 
 |  | 
 | The Welshman's sons departed at once. As they were leaving the room | 
 | Huck sprang up and exclaimed: | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, please don't tell ANYbody it was me that blowed on them! Oh, | 
 | please!" | 
 |  | 
 | "All right if you say it, Huck, but you ought to have the credit of | 
 | what you did." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh no, no! Please don't tell!" | 
 |  | 
 | When the young men were gone, the old Welshman said: | 
 |  | 
 | "They won't tell--and I won't. But why don't you want it known?" | 
 |  | 
 | Huck would not explain, further than to say that he already knew too | 
 | much about one of those men and would not have the man know that he | 
 | knew anything against him for the whole world--he would be killed for | 
 | knowing it, sure. | 
 |  | 
 | The old man promised secrecy once more, and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "How did you come to follow these fellows, lad? Were they looking | 
 | suspicious?" | 
 |  | 
 | Huck was silent while he framed a duly cautious reply. Then he said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, you see, I'm a kind of a hard lot,--least everybody says so, | 
 | and I don't see nothing agin it--and sometimes I can't sleep much, on | 
 | account of thinking about it and sort of trying to strike out a new way | 
 | of doing. That was the way of it last night. I couldn't sleep, and so I | 
 | come along up-street 'bout midnight, a-turning it all over, and when I | 
 | got to that old shackly brick store by the Temperance Tavern, I backed | 
 | up agin the wall to have another think. Well, just then along comes | 
 | these two chaps slipping along close by me, with something under their | 
 | arm, and I reckoned they'd stole it. One was a-smoking, and t'other one | 
 | wanted a light; so they stopped right before me and the cigars lit up | 
 | their faces and I see that the big one was the deaf and dumb Spaniard, | 
 | by his white whiskers and the patch on his eye, and t'other one was a | 
 | rusty, ragged-looking devil." | 
 |  | 
 | "Could you see the rags by the light of the cigars?" | 
 |  | 
 | This staggered Huck for a moment. Then he said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I don't know--but somehow it seems as if I did." | 
 |  | 
 | "Then they went on, and you--" | 
 |  | 
 | "Follered 'em--yes. That was it. I wanted to see what was up--they | 
 | sneaked along so. I dogged 'em to the widder's stile, and stood in the | 
 | dark and heard the ragged one beg for the widder, and the Spaniard | 
 | swear he'd spile her looks just as I told you and your two--" | 
 |  | 
 | "What! The DEAF AND DUMB man said all that!" | 
 |  | 
 | Huck had made another terrible mistake! He was trying his best to keep | 
 | the old man from getting the faintest hint of who the Spaniard might | 
 | be, and yet his tongue seemed determined to get him into trouble in | 
 | spite of all he could do. He made several efforts to creep out of his | 
 | scrape, but the old man's eye was upon him and he made blunder after | 
 | blunder. Presently the Welshman said: | 
 |  | 
 | "My boy, don't be afraid of me. I wouldn't hurt a hair of your head | 
 | for all the world. No--I'd protect you--I'd protect you. This Spaniard | 
 | is not deaf and dumb; you've let that slip without intending it; you | 
 | can't cover that up now. You know something about that Spaniard that | 
 | you want to keep dark. Now trust me--tell me what it is, and trust me | 
 | --I won't betray you." | 
 |  | 
 | Huck looked into the old man's honest eyes a moment, then bent over | 
 | and whispered in his ear: | 
 |  | 
 | "'Tain't a Spaniard--it's Injun Joe!" | 
 |  | 
 | The Welshman almost jumped out of his chair. In a moment he said: | 
 |  | 
 | "It's all plain enough, now. When you talked about notching ears and | 
 | slitting noses I judged that that was your own embellishment, because | 
 | white men don't take that sort of revenge. But an Injun! That's a | 
 | different matter altogether." | 
 |  | 
 | During breakfast the talk went on, and in the course of it the old man | 
 | said that the last thing which he and his sons had done, before going | 
 | to bed, was to get a lantern and examine the stile and its vicinity for | 
 | marks of blood. They found none, but captured a bulky bundle of-- | 
 |  | 
 | "Of WHAT?" | 
 |  | 
 | If the words had been lightning they could not have leaped with a more | 
 | stunning suddenness from Huck's blanched lips. His eyes were staring | 
 | wide, now, and his breath suspended--waiting for the answer. The | 
 | Welshman started--stared in return--three seconds--five seconds--ten | 
 | --then replied: | 
 |  | 
 | "Of burglar's tools. Why, what's the MATTER with you?" | 
 |  | 
 | Huck sank back, panting gently, but deeply, unutterably grateful. The | 
 | Welshman eyed him gravely, curiously--and presently said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, burglar's tools. That appears to relieve you a good deal. But | 
 | what did give you that turn? What were YOU expecting we'd found?" | 
 |  | 
 | Huck was in a close place--the inquiring eye was upon him--he would | 
 | have given anything for material for a plausible answer--nothing | 
 | suggested itself--the inquiring eye was boring deeper and deeper--a | 
 | senseless reply offered--there was no time to weigh it, so at a venture | 
 | he uttered it--feebly: | 
 |  | 
 | "Sunday-school books, maybe." | 
 |  | 
 | Poor Huck was too distressed to smile, but the old man laughed loud | 
 | and joyously, shook up the details of his anatomy from head to foot, | 
 | and ended by saying that such a laugh was money in a-man's pocket, | 
 | because it cut down the doctor's bill like everything. Then he added: | 
 |  | 
 | "Poor old chap, you're white and jaded--you ain't well a bit--no | 
 | wonder you're a little flighty and off your balance. But you'll come | 
 | out of it. Rest and sleep will fetch you out all right, I hope." | 
 |  | 
 | Huck was irritated to think he had been such a goose and betrayed such | 
 | a suspicious excitement, for he had dropped the idea that the parcel | 
 | brought from the tavern was the treasure, as soon as he had heard the | 
 | talk at the widow's stile. He had only thought it was not the treasure, | 
 | however--he had not known that it wasn't--and so the suggestion of a | 
 | captured bundle was too much for his self-possession. But on the whole | 
 | he felt glad the little episode had happened, for now he knew beyond | 
 | all question that that bundle was not THE bundle, and so his mind was | 
 | at rest and exceedingly comfortable. In fact, everything seemed to be | 
 | drifting just in the right direction, now; the treasure must be still | 
 | in No. 2, the men would be captured and jailed that day, and he and Tom | 
 | could seize the gold that night without any trouble or any fear of | 
 | interruption. | 
 |  | 
 | Just as breakfast was completed there was a knock at the door. Huck | 
 | jumped for a hiding-place, for he had no mind to be connected even | 
 | remotely with the late event. The Welshman admitted several ladies and | 
 | gentlemen, among them the Widow Douglas, and noticed that groups of | 
 | citizens were climbing up the hill--to stare at the stile. So the news | 
 | had spread. The Welshman had to tell the story of the night to the | 
 | visitors. The widow's gratitude for her preservation was outspoken. | 
 |  | 
 | "Don't say a word about it, madam. There's another that you're more | 
 | beholden to than you are to me and my boys, maybe, but he don't allow | 
 | me to tell his name. We wouldn't have been there but for him." | 
 |  | 
 | Of course this excited a curiosity so vast that it almost belittled | 
 | the main matter--but the Welshman allowed it to eat into the vitals of | 
 | his visitors, and through them be transmitted to the whole town, for he | 
 | refused to part with his secret. When all else had been learned, the | 
 | widow said: | 
 |  | 
 | "I went to sleep reading in bed and slept straight through all that | 
 | noise. Why didn't you come and wake me?" | 
 |  | 
 | "We judged it warn't worth while. Those fellows warn't likely to come | 
 | again--they hadn't any tools left to work with, and what was the use of | 
 | waking you up and scaring you to death? My three negro men stood guard | 
 | at your house all the rest of the night. They've just come back." | 
 |  | 
 | More visitors came, and the story had to be told and retold for a | 
 | couple of hours more. | 
 |  | 
 | There was no Sabbath-school during day-school vacation, but everybody | 
 | was early at church. The stirring event was well canvassed. News came | 
 | that not a sign of the two villains had been yet discovered. When the | 
 | sermon was finished, Judge Thatcher's wife dropped alongside of Mrs. | 
 | Harper as she moved down the aisle with the crowd and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Is my Becky going to sleep all day? I just expected she would be | 
 | tired to death." | 
 |  | 
 | "Your Becky?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes," with a startled look--"didn't she stay with you last night?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, no." | 
 |  | 
 | Mrs. Thatcher turned pale, and sank into a pew, just as Aunt Polly, | 
 | talking briskly with a friend, passed by. Aunt Polly said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Good-morning, Mrs. Thatcher. Good-morning, Mrs. Harper. I've got a | 
 | boy that's turned up missing. I reckon my Tom stayed at your house last | 
 | night--one of you. And now he's afraid to come to church. I've got to | 
 | settle with him." | 
 |  | 
 | Mrs. Thatcher shook her head feebly and turned paler than ever. | 
 |  | 
 | "He didn't stay with us," said Mrs. Harper, beginning to look uneasy. | 
 | A marked anxiety came into Aunt Polly's face. | 
 |  | 
 | "Joe Harper, have you seen my Tom this morning?" | 
 |  | 
 | "No'm." | 
 |  | 
 | "When did you see him last?" | 
 |  | 
 | Joe tried to remember, but was not sure he could say. The people had | 
 | stopped moving out of church. Whispers passed along, and a boding | 
 | uneasiness took possession of every countenance. Children were | 
 | anxiously questioned, and young teachers. They all said they had not | 
 | noticed whether Tom and Becky were on board the ferryboat on the | 
 | homeward trip; it was dark; no one thought of inquiring if any one was | 
 | missing. One young man finally blurted out his fear that they were | 
 | still in the cave! Mrs. Thatcher swooned away. Aunt Polly fell to | 
 | crying and wringing her hands. | 
 |  | 
 | The alarm swept from lip to lip, from group to group, from street to | 
 | street, and within five minutes the bells were wildly clanging and the | 
 | whole town was up! The Cardiff Hill episode sank into instant | 
 | insignificance, the burglars were forgotten, horses were saddled, | 
 | skiffs were manned, the ferryboat ordered out, and before the horror | 
 | was half an hour old, two hundred men were pouring down highroad and | 
 | river toward the cave. | 
 |  | 
 | All the long afternoon the village seemed empty and dead. Many women | 
 | visited Aunt Polly and Mrs. Thatcher and tried to comfort them. They | 
 | cried with them, too, and that was still better than words. All the | 
 | tedious night the town waited for news; but when the morning dawned at | 
 | last, all the word that came was, "Send more candles--and send food." | 
 | Mrs. Thatcher was almost crazed; and Aunt Polly, also. Judge Thatcher | 
 | sent messages of hope and encouragement from the cave, but they | 
 | conveyed no real cheer. | 
 |  | 
 | The old Welshman came home toward daylight, spattered with | 
 | candle-grease, smeared with clay, and almost worn out. He found Huck | 
 | still in the bed that had been provided for him, and delirious with | 
 | fever. The physicians were all at the cave, so the Widow Douglas came | 
 | and took charge of the patient. She said she would do her best by him, | 
 | because, whether he was good, bad, or indifferent, he was the Lord's, | 
 | and nothing that was the Lord's was a thing to be neglected. The | 
 | Welshman said Huck had good spots in him, and the widow said: | 
 |  | 
 | "You can depend on it. That's the Lord's mark. He don't leave it off. | 
 | He never does. Puts it somewhere on every creature that comes from his | 
 | hands." | 
 |  | 
 | Early in the forenoon parties of jaded men began to straggle into the | 
 | village, but the strongest of the citizens continued searching. All the | 
 | news that could be gained was that remotenesses of the cavern were | 
 | being ransacked that had never been visited before; that every corner | 
 | and crevice was going to be thoroughly searched; that wherever one | 
 | wandered through the maze of passages, lights were to be seen flitting | 
 | hither and thither in the distance, and shoutings and pistol-shots sent | 
 | their hollow reverberations to the ear down the sombre aisles. In one | 
 | place, far from the section usually traversed by tourists, the names | 
 | "BECKY & TOM" had been found traced upon the rocky wall with | 
 | candle-smoke, and near at hand a grease-soiled bit of ribbon. Mrs. | 
 | Thatcher recognized the ribbon and cried over it. She said it was the | 
 | last relic she should ever have of her child; and that no other memorial | 
 | of her could ever be so precious, because this one parted latest from | 
 | the living body before the awful death came. Some said that now and | 
 | then, in the cave, a far-away speck of light would glimmer, and then a | 
 | glorious shout would burst forth and a score of men go trooping down the | 
 | echoing aisle--and then a sickening disappointment always followed; the | 
 | children were not there; it was only a searcher's light. | 
 |  | 
 | Three dreadful days and nights dragged their tedious hours along, and | 
 | the village sank into a hopeless stupor. No one had heart for anything. | 
 | The accidental discovery, just made, that the proprietor of the | 
 | Temperance Tavern kept liquor on his premises, scarcely fluttered the | 
 | public pulse, tremendous as the fact was. In a lucid interval, Huck | 
 | feebly led up to the subject of taverns, and finally asked--dimly | 
 | dreading the worst--if anything had been discovered at the Temperance | 
 | Tavern since he had been ill. | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes," said the widow. | 
 |  | 
 | Huck started up in bed, wild-eyed: | 
 |  | 
 | "What? What was it?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Liquor!--and the place has been shut up. Lie down, child--what a turn | 
 | you did give me!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Only tell me just one thing--only just one--please! Was it Tom Sawyer | 
 | that found it?" | 
 |  | 
 | The widow burst into tears. "Hush, hush, child, hush! I've told you | 
 | before, you must NOT talk. You are very, very sick!" | 
 |  | 
 | Then nothing but liquor had been found; there would have been a great | 
 | powwow if it had been the gold. So the treasure was gone forever--gone | 
 | forever! But what could she be crying about? Curious that she should | 
 | cry. | 
 |  | 
 | These thoughts worked their dim way through Huck's mind, and under the | 
 | weariness they gave him he fell asleep. The widow said to herself: | 
 |  | 
 | "There--he's asleep, poor wreck. Tom Sawyer find it! Pity but somebody | 
 | could find Tom Sawyer! Ah, there ain't many left, now, that's got hope | 
 | enough, or strength enough, either, to go on searching." | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XXXI | 
 |  | 
 | NOW to return to Tom and Becky's share in the picnic. They tripped | 
 | along the murky aisles with the rest of the company, visiting the | 
 | familiar wonders of the cave--wonders dubbed with rather | 
 | over-descriptive names, such as "The Drawing-Room," "The Cathedral," | 
 | "Aladdin's Palace," and so on. Presently the hide-and-seek frolicking | 
 | began, and Tom and Becky engaged in it with zeal until the exertion | 
 | began to grow a trifle wearisome; then they wandered down a sinuous | 
 | avenue holding their candles aloft and reading the tangled web-work of | 
 | names, dates, post-office addresses, and mottoes with which the rocky | 
 | walls had been frescoed (in candle-smoke). Still drifting along and | 
 | talking, they scarcely noticed that they were now in a part of the cave | 
 | whose walls were not frescoed. They smoked their own names under an | 
 | overhanging shelf and moved on. Presently they came to a place where a | 
 | little stream of water, trickling over a ledge and carrying a limestone | 
 | sediment with it, had, in the slow-dragging ages, formed a laced and | 
 | ruffled Niagara in gleaming and imperishable stone. Tom squeezed his | 
 | small body behind it in order to illuminate it for Becky's | 
 | gratification. He found that it curtained a sort of steep natural | 
 | stairway which was enclosed between narrow walls, and at once the | 
 | ambition to be a discoverer seized him. Becky responded to his call, | 
 | and they made a smoke-mark for future guidance, and started upon their | 
 | quest. They wound this way and that, far down into the secret depths of | 
 | the cave, made another mark, and branched off in search of novelties to | 
 | tell the upper world about. In one place they found a spacious cavern, | 
 | from whose ceiling depended a multitude of shining stalactites of the | 
 | length and circumference of a man's leg; they walked all about it, | 
 | wondering and admiring, and presently left it by one of the numerous | 
 | passages that opened into it. This shortly brought them to a bewitching | 
 | spring, whose basin was incrusted with a frostwork of glittering | 
 | crystals; it was in the midst of a cavern whose walls were supported by | 
 | many fantastic pillars which had been formed by the joining of great | 
 | stalactites and stalagmites together, the result of the ceaseless | 
 | water-drip of centuries. Under the roof vast knots of bats had packed | 
 | themselves together, thousands in a bunch; the lights disturbed the | 
 | creatures and they came flocking down by hundreds, squeaking and | 
 | darting furiously at the candles. Tom knew their ways and the danger of | 
 | this sort of conduct. He seized Becky's hand and hurried her into the | 
 | first corridor that offered; and none too soon, for a bat struck | 
 | Becky's light out with its wing while she was passing out of the | 
 | cavern. The bats chased the children a good distance; but the fugitives | 
 | plunged into every new passage that offered, and at last got rid of the | 
 | perilous things. Tom found a subterranean lake, shortly, which | 
 | stretched its dim length away until its shape was lost in the shadows. | 
 | He wanted to explore its borders, but concluded that it would be best | 
 | to sit down and rest awhile, first. Now, for the first time, the deep | 
 | stillness of the place laid a clammy hand upon the spirits of the | 
 | children. Becky said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, I didn't notice, but it seems ever so long since I heard any of | 
 | the others." | 
 |  | 
 | "Come to think, Becky, we are away down below them--and I don't know | 
 | how far away north, or south, or east, or whichever it is. We couldn't | 
 | hear them here." | 
 |  | 
 | Becky grew apprehensive. | 
 |  | 
 | "I wonder how long we've been down here, Tom? We better start back." | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, I reckon we better. P'raps we better." | 
 |  | 
 | "Can you find the way, Tom? It's all a mixed-up crookedness to me." | 
 |  | 
 | "I reckon I could find it--but then the bats. If they put our candles | 
 | out it will be an awful fix. Let's try some other way, so as not to go | 
 | through there." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well. But I hope we won't get lost. It would be so awful!" and the | 
 | girl shuddered at the thought of the dreadful possibilities. | 
 |  | 
 | They started through a corridor, and traversed it in silence a long | 
 | way, glancing at each new opening, to see if there was anything | 
 | familiar about the look of it; but they were all strange. Every time | 
 | Tom made an examination, Becky would watch his face for an encouraging | 
 | sign, and he would say cheerily: | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, it's all right. This ain't the one, but we'll come to it right | 
 | away!" | 
 |  | 
 | But he felt less and less hopeful with each failure, and presently | 
 | began to turn off into diverging avenues at sheer random, in desperate | 
 | hope of finding the one that was wanted. He still said it was "all | 
 | right," but there was such a leaden dread at his heart that the words | 
 | had lost their ring and sounded just as if he had said, "All is lost!" | 
 | Becky clung to his side in an anguish of fear, and tried hard to keep | 
 | back the tears, but they would come. At last she said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, Tom, never mind the bats, let's go back that way! We seem to get | 
 | worse and worse off all the time." | 
 |  | 
 | "Listen!" said he. | 
 |  | 
 | Profound silence; silence so deep that even their breathings were | 
 | conspicuous in the hush. Tom shouted. The call went echoing down the | 
 | empty aisles and died out in the distance in a faint sound that | 
 | resembled a ripple of mocking laughter. | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, don't do it again, Tom, it is too horrid," said Becky. | 
 |  | 
 | "It is horrid, but I better, Becky; they might hear us, you know," and | 
 | he shouted again. | 
 |  | 
 | The "might" was even a chillier horror than the ghostly laughter, it | 
 | so confessed a perishing hope. The children stood still and listened; | 
 | but there was no result. Tom turned upon the back track at once, and | 
 | hurried his steps. It was but a little while before a certain | 
 | indecision in his manner revealed another fearful fact to Becky--he | 
 | could not find his way back! | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, Tom, you didn't make any marks!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Becky, I was such a fool! Such a fool! I never thought we might want | 
 | to come back! No--I can't find the way. It's all mixed up." | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, Tom, we're lost! we're lost! We never can get out of this awful | 
 | place! Oh, why DID we ever leave the others!" | 
 |  | 
 | She sank to the ground and burst into such a frenzy of crying that Tom | 
 | was appalled with the idea that she might die, or lose her reason. He | 
 | sat down by her and put his arms around her; she buried her face in his | 
 | bosom, she clung to him, she poured out her terrors, her unavailing | 
 | regrets, and the far echoes turned them all to jeering laughter. Tom | 
 | begged her to pluck up hope again, and she said she could not. He fell | 
 | to blaming and abusing himself for getting her into this miserable | 
 | situation; this had a better effect. She said she would try to hope | 
 | again, she would get up and follow wherever he might lead if only he | 
 | would not talk like that any more. For he was no more to blame than | 
 | she, she said. | 
 |  | 
 | So they moved on again--aimlessly--simply at random--all they could do | 
 | was to move, keep moving. For a little while, hope made a show of | 
 | reviving--not with any reason to back it, but only because it is its | 
 | nature to revive when the spring has not been taken out of it by age | 
 | and familiarity with failure. | 
 |  | 
 | By-and-by Tom took Becky's candle and blew it out. This economy meant | 
 | so much! Words were not needed. Becky understood, and her hope died | 
 | again. She knew that Tom had a whole candle and three or four pieces in | 
 | his pockets--yet he must economize. | 
 |  | 
 | By-and-by, fatigue began to assert its claims; the children tried to | 
 | pay attention, for it was dreadful to think of sitting down when time | 
 | was grown to be so precious, moving, in some direction, in any | 
 | direction, was at least progress and might bear fruit; but to sit down | 
 | was to invite death and shorten its pursuit. | 
 |  | 
 | At last Becky's frail limbs refused to carry her farther. She sat | 
 | down. Tom rested with her, and they talked of home, and the friends | 
 | there, and the comfortable beds and, above all, the light! Becky cried, | 
 | and Tom tried to think of some way of comforting her, but all his | 
 | encouragements were grown threadbare with use, and sounded like | 
 | sarcasms. Fatigue bore so heavily upon Becky that she drowsed off to | 
 | sleep. Tom was grateful. He sat looking into her drawn face and saw it | 
 | grow smooth and natural under the influence of pleasant dreams; and | 
 | by-and-by a smile dawned and rested there. The peaceful face reflected | 
 | somewhat of peace and healing into his own spirit, and his thoughts | 
 | wandered away to bygone times and dreamy memories. While he was deep in | 
 | his musings, Becky woke up with a breezy little laugh--but it was | 
 | stricken dead upon her lips, and a groan followed it. | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, how COULD I sleep! I wish I never, never had waked! No! No, I | 
 | don't, Tom! Don't look so! I won't say it again." | 
 |  | 
 | "I'm glad you've slept, Becky; you'll feel rested, now, and we'll find | 
 | the way out." | 
 |  | 
 | "We can try, Tom; but I've seen such a beautiful country in my dream. | 
 | I reckon we are going there." | 
 |  | 
 | "Maybe not, maybe not. Cheer up, Becky, and let's go on trying." | 
 |  | 
 | They rose up and wandered along, hand in hand and hopeless. They tried | 
 | to estimate how long they had been in the cave, but all they knew was | 
 | that it seemed days and weeks, and yet it was plain that this could not | 
 | be, for their candles were not gone yet. A long time after this--they | 
 | could not tell how long--Tom said they must go softly and listen for | 
 | dripping water--they must find a spring. They found one presently, and | 
 | Tom said it was time to rest again. Both were cruelly tired, yet Becky | 
 | said she thought she could go a little farther. She was surprised to | 
 | hear Tom dissent. She could not understand it. They sat down, and Tom | 
 | fastened his candle to the wall in front of them with some clay. | 
 | Thought was soon busy; nothing was said for some time. Then Becky broke | 
 | the silence: | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, I am so hungry!" | 
 |  | 
 | Tom took something out of his pocket. | 
 |  | 
 | "Do you remember this?" said he. | 
 |  | 
 | Becky almost smiled. | 
 |  | 
 | "It's our wedding-cake, Tom." | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes--I wish it was as big as a barrel, for it's all we've got." | 
 |  | 
 | "I saved it from the picnic for us to dream on, Tom, the way grown-up | 
 | people do with wedding-cake--but it'll be our--" | 
 |  | 
 | She dropped the sentence where it was. Tom divided the cake and Becky | 
 | ate with good appetite, while Tom nibbled at his moiety. There was | 
 | abundance of cold water to finish the feast with. By-and-by Becky | 
 | suggested that they move on again. Tom was silent a moment. Then he | 
 | said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Becky, can you bear it if I tell you something?" | 
 |  | 
 | Becky's face paled, but she thought she could. | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, then, Becky, we must stay here, where there's water to drink. | 
 | That little piece is our last candle!" | 
 |  | 
 | Becky gave loose to tears and wailings. Tom did what he could to | 
 | comfort her, but with little effect. At length Becky said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, Becky?" | 
 |  | 
 | "They'll miss us and hunt for us!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, they will! Certainly they will!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Maybe they're hunting for us now, Tom." | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, I reckon maybe they are. I hope they are." | 
 |  | 
 | "When would they miss us, Tom?" | 
 |  | 
 | "When they get back to the boat, I reckon." | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, it might be dark then--would they notice we hadn't come?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I don't know. But anyway, your mother would miss you as soon as they | 
 | got home." | 
 |  | 
 | A frightened look in Becky's face brought Tom to his senses and he saw | 
 | that he had made a blunder. Becky was not to have gone home that night! | 
 | The children became silent and thoughtful. In a moment a new burst of | 
 | grief from Becky showed Tom that the thing in his mind had struck hers | 
 | also--that the Sabbath morning might be half spent before Mrs. Thatcher | 
 | discovered that Becky was not at Mrs. Harper's. | 
 |  | 
 | The children fastened their eyes upon their bit of candle and watched | 
 | it melt slowly and pitilessly away; saw the half inch of wick stand | 
 | alone at last; saw the feeble flame rise and fall, climb the thin | 
 | column of smoke, linger at its top a moment, and then--the horror of | 
 | utter darkness reigned! | 
 |  | 
 | How long afterward it was that Becky came to a slow consciousness that | 
 | she was crying in Tom's arms, neither could tell. All that they knew | 
 | was, that after what seemed a mighty stretch of time, both awoke out of | 
 | a dead stupor of sleep and resumed their miseries once more. Tom said | 
 | it might be Sunday, now--maybe Monday. He tried to get Becky to talk, | 
 | but her sorrows were too oppressive, all her hopes were gone. Tom said | 
 | that they must have been missed long ago, and no doubt the search was | 
 | going on. He would shout and maybe some one would come. He tried it; | 
 | but in the darkness the distant echoes sounded so hideously that he | 
 | tried it no more. | 
 |  | 
 | The hours wasted away, and hunger came to torment the captives again. | 
 | A portion of Tom's half of the cake was left; they divided and ate it. | 
 | But they seemed hungrier than before. The poor morsel of food only | 
 | whetted desire. | 
 |  | 
 | By-and-by Tom said: | 
 |  | 
 | "SH! Did you hear that?" | 
 |  | 
 | Both held their breath and listened. There was a sound like the | 
 | faintest, far-off shout. Instantly Tom answered it, and leading Becky | 
 | by the hand, started groping down the corridor in its direction. | 
 | Presently he listened again; again the sound was heard, and apparently | 
 | a little nearer. | 
 |  | 
 | "It's them!" said Tom; "they're coming! Come along, Becky--we're all | 
 | right now!" | 
 |  | 
 | The joy of the prisoners was almost overwhelming. Their speed was | 
 | slow, however, because pitfalls were somewhat common, and had to be | 
 | guarded against. They shortly came to one and had to stop. It might be | 
 | three feet deep, it might be a hundred--there was no passing it at any | 
 | rate. Tom got down on his breast and reached as far down as he could. | 
 | No bottom. They must stay there and wait until the searchers came. They | 
 | listened; evidently the distant shoutings were growing more distant! a | 
 | moment or two more and they had gone altogether. The heart-sinking | 
 | misery of it! Tom whooped until he was hoarse, but it was of no use. He | 
 | talked hopefully to Becky; but an age of anxious waiting passed and no | 
 | sounds came again. | 
 |  | 
 | The children groped their way back to the spring. The weary time | 
 | dragged on; they slept again, and awoke famished and woe-stricken. Tom | 
 | believed it must be Tuesday by this time. | 
 |  | 
 | Now an idea struck him. There were some side passages near at hand. It | 
 | would be better to explore some of these than bear the weight of the | 
 | heavy time in idleness. He took a kite-line from his pocket, tied it to | 
 | a projection, and he and Becky started, Tom in the lead, unwinding the | 
 | line as he groped along. At the end of twenty steps the corridor ended | 
 | in a "jumping-off place." Tom got down on his knees and felt below, and | 
 | then as far around the corner as he could reach with his hands | 
 | conveniently; he made an effort to stretch yet a little farther to the | 
 | right, and at that moment, not twenty yards away, a human hand, holding | 
 | a candle, appeared from behind a rock! Tom lifted up a glorious shout, | 
 | and instantly that hand was followed by the body it belonged to--Injun | 
 | Joe's! Tom was paralyzed; he could not move. He was vastly gratified | 
 | the next moment, to see the "Spaniard" take to his heels and get | 
 | himself out of sight. Tom wondered that Joe had not recognized his | 
 | voice and come over and killed him for testifying in court. But the | 
 | echoes must have disguised the voice. Without doubt, that was it, he | 
 | reasoned. Tom's fright weakened every muscle in his body. He said to | 
 | himself that if he had strength enough to get back to the spring he | 
 | would stay there, and nothing should tempt him to run the risk of | 
 | meeting Injun Joe again. He was careful to keep from Becky what it was | 
 | he had seen. He told her he had only shouted "for luck." | 
 |  | 
 | But hunger and wretchedness rise superior to fears in the long run. | 
 | Another tedious wait at the spring and another long sleep brought | 
 | changes. The children awoke tortured with a raging hunger. Tom believed | 
 | that it must be Wednesday or Thursday or even Friday or Saturday, now, | 
 | and that the search had been given over. He proposed to explore another | 
 | passage. He felt willing to risk Injun Joe and all other terrors. But | 
 | Becky was very weak. She had sunk into a dreary apathy and would not be | 
 | roused. She said she would wait, now, where she was, and die--it would | 
 | not be long. She told Tom to go with the kite-line and explore if he | 
 | chose; but she implored him to come back every little while and speak | 
 | to her; and she made him promise that when the awful time came, he | 
 | would stay by her and hold her hand until all was over. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom kissed her, with a choking sensation in his throat, and made a | 
 | show of being confident of finding the searchers or an escape from the | 
 | cave; then he took the kite-line in his hand and went groping down one | 
 | of the passages on his hands and knees, distressed with hunger and sick | 
 | with bodings of coming doom. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XXXII | 
 |  | 
 | TUESDAY afternoon came, and waned to the twilight. The village of St. | 
 | Petersburg still mourned. The lost children had not been found. Public | 
 | prayers had been offered up for them, and many and many a private | 
 | prayer that had the petitioner's whole heart in it; but still no good | 
 | news came from the cave. The majority of the searchers had given up the | 
 | quest and gone back to their daily avocations, saying that it was plain | 
 | the children could never be found. Mrs. Thatcher was very ill, and a | 
 | great part of the time delirious. People said it was heartbreaking to | 
 | hear her call her child, and raise her head and listen a whole minute | 
 | at a time, then lay it wearily down again with a moan. Aunt Polly had | 
 | drooped into a settled melancholy, and her gray hair had grown almost | 
 | white. The village went to its rest on Tuesday night, sad and forlorn. | 
 |  | 
 | Away in the middle of the night a wild peal burst from the village | 
 | bells, and in a moment the streets were swarming with frantic half-clad | 
 | people, who shouted, "Turn out! turn out! they're found! they're | 
 | found!" Tin pans and horns were added to the din, the population massed | 
 | itself and moved toward the river, met the children coming in an open | 
 | carriage drawn by shouting citizens, thronged around it, joined its | 
 | homeward march, and swept magnificently up the main street roaring | 
 | huzzah after huzzah! | 
 |  | 
 | The village was illuminated; nobody went to bed again; it was the | 
 | greatest night the little town had ever seen. During the first half-hour | 
 | a procession of villagers filed through Judge Thatcher's house, seized | 
 | the saved ones and kissed them, squeezed Mrs. Thatcher's hand, tried to | 
 | speak but couldn't--and drifted out raining tears all over the place. | 
 |  | 
 | Aunt Polly's happiness was complete, and Mrs. Thatcher's nearly so. It | 
 | would be complete, however, as soon as the messenger dispatched with | 
 | the great news to the cave should get the word to her husband. Tom lay | 
 | upon a sofa with an eager auditory about him and told the history of | 
 | the wonderful adventure, putting in many striking additions to adorn it | 
 | withal; and closed with a description of how he left Becky and went on | 
 | an exploring expedition; how he followed two avenues as far as his | 
 | kite-line would reach; how he followed a third to the fullest stretch of | 
 | the kite-line, and was about to turn back when he glimpsed a far-off | 
 | speck that looked like daylight; dropped the line and groped toward it, | 
 | pushed his head and shoulders through a small hole, and saw the broad | 
 | Mississippi rolling by! And if it had only happened to be night he would | 
 | not have seen that speck of daylight and would not have explored that | 
 | passage any more! He told how he went back for Becky and broke the good | 
 | news and she told him not to fret her with such stuff, for she was | 
 | tired, and knew she was going to die, and wanted to. He described how he | 
 | labored with her and convinced her; and how she almost died for joy when | 
 | she had groped to where she actually saw the blue speck of daylight; how | 
 | he pushed his way out at the hole and then helped her out; how they sat | 
 | there and cried for gladness; how some men came along in a skiff and Tom | 
 | hailed them and told them their situation and their famished condition; | 
 | how the men didn't believe the wild tale at first, "because," said they, | 
 | "you are five miles down the river below the valley the cave is in" | 
 | --then took them aboard, rowed to a house, gave them supper, made them | 
 | rest till two or three hours after dark and then brought them home. | 
 |  | 
 | Before day-dawn, Judge Thatcher and the handful of searchers with him | 
 | were tracked out, in the cave, by the twine clews they had strung | 
 | behind them, and informed of the great news. | 
 |  | 
 | Three days and nights of toil and hunger in the cave were not to be | 
 | shaken off at once, as Tom and Becky soon discovered. They were | 
 | bedridden all of Wednesday and Thursday, and seemed to grow more and | 
 | more tired and worn, all the time. Tom got about, a little, on | 
 | Thursday, was down-town Friday, and nearly as whole as ever Saturday; | 
 | but Becky did not leave her room until Sunday, and then she looked as | 
 | if she had passed through a wasting illness. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom learned of Huck's sickness and went to see him on Friday, but | 
 | could not be admitted to the bedroom; neither could he on Saturday or | 
 | Sunday. He was admitted daily after that, but was warned to keep still | 
 | about his adventure and introduce no exciting topic. The Widow Douglas | 
 | stayed by to see that he obeyed. At home Tom learned of the Cardiff | 
 | Hill event; also that the "ragged man's" body had eventually been found | 
 | in the river near the ferry-landing; he had been drowned while trying | 
 | to escape, perhaps. | 
 |  | 
 | About a fortnight after Tom's rescue from the cave, he started off to | 
 | visit Huck, who had grown plenty strong enough, now, to hear exciting | 
 | talk, and Tom had some that would interest him, he thought. Judge | 
 | Thatcher's house was on Tom's way, and he stopped to see Becky. The | 
 | Judge and some friends set Tom to talking, and some one asked him | 
 | ironically if he wouldn't like to go to the cave again. Tom said he | 
 | thought he wouldn't mind it. The Judge said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, there are others just like you, Tom, I've not the least doubt. | 
 | But we have taken care of that. Nobody will get lost in that cave any | 
 | more." | 
 |  | 
 | "Why?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Because I had its big door sheathed with boiler iron two weeks ago, | 
 | and triple-locked--and I've got the keys." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom turned as white as a sheet. | 
 |  | 
 | "What's the matter, boy! Here, run, somebody! Fetch a glass of water!" | 
 |  | 
 | The water was brought and thrown into Tom's face. | 
 |  | 
 | "Ah, now you're all right. What was the matter with you, Tom?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, Judge, Injun Joe's in the cave!" | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XXXIII | 
 |  | 
 | WITHIN a few minutes the news had spread, and a dozen skiff-loads of | 
 | men were on their way to McDougal's cave, and the ferryboat, well | 
 | filled with passengers, soon followed. Tom Sawyer was in the skiff that | 
 | bore Judge Thatcher. | 
 |  | 
 | When the cave door was unlocked, a sorrowful sight presented itself in | 
 | the dim twilight of the place. Injun Joe lay stretched upon the ground, | 
 | dead, with his face close to the crack of the door, as if his longing | 
 | eyes had been fixed, to the latest moment, upon the light and the cheer | 
 | of the free world outside. Tom was touched, for he knew by his own | 
 | experience how this wretch had suffered. His pity was moved, but | 
 | nevertheless he felt an abounding sense of relief and security, now, | 
 | which revealed to him in a degree which he had not fully appreciated | 
 | before how vast a weight of dread had been lying upon him since the day | 
 | he lifted his voice against this bloody-minded outcast. | 
 |  | 
 | Injun Joe's bowie-knife lay close by, its blade broken in two. The | 
 | great foundation-beam of the door had been chipped and hacked through, | 
 | with tedious labor; useless labor, too, it was, for the native rock | 
 | formed a sill outside it, and upon that stubborn material the knife had | 
 | wrought no effect; the only damage done was to the knife itself. But if | 
 | there had been no stony obstruction there the labor would have been | 
 | useless still, for if the beam had been wholly cut away Injun Joe could | 
 | not have squeezed his body under the door, and he knew it. So he had | 
 | only hacked that place in order to be doing something--in order to pass | 
 | the weary time--in order to employ his tortured faculties. Ordinarily | 
 | one could find half a dozen bits of candle stuck around in the crevices | 
 | of this vestibule, left there by tourists; but there were none now. The | 
 | prisoner had searched them out and eaten them. He had also contrived to | 
 | catch a few bats, and these, also, he had eaten, leaving only their | 
 | claws. The poor unfortunate had starved to death. In one place, near at | 
 | hand, a stalagmite had been slowly growing up from the ground for ages, | 
 | builded by the water-drip from a stalactite overhead. The captive had | 
 | broken off the stalagmite, and upon the stump had placed a stone, | 
 | wherein he had scooped a shallow hollow to catch the precious drop | 
 | that fell once in every three minutes with the dreary regularity of a | 
 | clock-tick--a dessertspoonful once in four and twenty hours. That drop | 
 | was falling when the Pyramids were new; when Troy fell; when the | 
 | foundations of Rome were laid; when Christ was crucified; when the | 
 | Conqueror created the British empire; when Columbus sailed; when the | 
 | massacre at Lexington was "news." It is falling now; it will still be | 
 | falling when all these things shall have sunk down the afternoon of | 
 | history, and the twilight of tradition, and been swallowed up in the | 
 | thick night of oblivion. Has everything a purpose and a mission? Did | 
 | this drop fall patiently during five thousand years to be ready for | 
 | this flitting human insect's need? and has it another important object | 
 | to accomplish ten thousand years to come? No matter. It is many and | 
 | many a year since the hapless half-breed scooped out the stone to catch | 
 | the priceless drops, but to this day the tourist stares longest at that | 
 | pathetic stone and that slow-dropping water when he comes to see the | 
 | wonders of McDougal's cave. Injun Joe's cup stands first in the list of | 
 | the cavern's marvels; even "Aladdin's Palace" cannot rival it. | 
 |  | 
 | Injun Joe was buried near the mouth of the cave; and people flocked | 
 | there in boats and wagons from the towns and from all the farms and | 
 | hamlets for seven miles around; they brought their children, and all | 
 | sorts of provisions, and confessed that they had had almost as | 
 | satisfactory a time at the funeral as they could have had at the | 
 | hanging. | 
 |  | 
 | This funeral stopped the further growth of one thing--the petition to | 
 | the governor for Injun Joe's pardon. The petition had been largely | 
 | signed; many tearful and eloquent meetings had been held, and a | 
 | committee of sappy women been appointed to go in deep mourning and wail | 
 | around the governor, and implore him to be a merciful ass and trample | 
 | his duty under foot. Injun Joe was believed to have killed five | 
 | citizens of the village, but what of that? If he had been Satan himself | 
 | there would have been plenty of weaklings ready to scribble their names | 
 | to a pardon-petition, and drip a tear on it from their permanently | 
 | impaired and leaky water-works. | 
 |  | 
 | The morning after the funeral Tom took Huck to a private place to have | 
 | an important talk. Huck had learned all about Tom's adventure from the | 
 | Welshman and the Widow Douglas, by this time, but Tom said he reckoned | 
 | there was one thing they had not told him; that thing was what he | 
 | wanted to talk about now. Huck's face saddened. He said: | 
 |  | 
 | "I know what it is. You got into No. 2 and never found anything but | 
 | whiskey. Nobody told me it was you; but I just knowed it must 'a' ben | 
 | you, soon as I heard 'bout that whiskey business; and I knowed you | 
 | hadn't got the money becuz you'd 'a' got at me some way or other and | 
 | told me even if you was mum to everybody else. Tom, something's always | 
 | told me we'd never get holt of that swag." | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, Huck, I never told on that tavern-keeper. YOU know his tavern | 
 | was all right the Saturday I went to the picnic. Don't you remember you | 
 | was to watch there that night?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh yes! Why, it seems 'bout a year ago. It was that very night that I | 
 | follered Injun Joe to the widder's." | 
 |  | 
 | "YOU followed him?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes--but you keep mum. I reckon Injun Joe's left friends behind him, | 
 | and I don't want 'em souring on me and doing me mean tricks. If it | 
 | hadn't ben for me he'd be down in Texas now, all right." | 
 |  | 
 | Then Huck told his entire adventure in confidence to Tom, who had only | 
 | heard of the Welshman's part of it before. | 
 |  | 
 | "Well," said Huck, presently, coming back to the main question, | 
 | "whoever nipped the whiskey in No. 2, nipped the money, too, I reckon | 
 | --anyways it's a goner for us, Tom." | 
 |  | 
 | "Huck, that money wasn't ever in No. 2!" | 
 |  | 
 | "What!" Huck searched his comrade's face keenly. "Tom, have you got on | 
 | the track of that money again?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Huck, it's in the cave!" | 
 |  | 
 | Huck's eyes blazed. | 
 |  | 
 | "Say it again, Tom." | 
 |  | 
 | "The money's in the cave!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom--honest injun, now--is it fun, or earnest?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Earnest, Huck--just as earnest as ever I was in my life. Will you go | 
 | in there with me and help get it out?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I bet I will! I will if it's where we can blaze our way to it and not | 
 | get lost." | 
 |  | 
 | "Huck, we can do that without the least little bit of trouble in the | 
 | world." | 
 |  | 
 | "Good as wheat! What makes you think the money's--" | 
 |  | 
 | "Huck, you just wait till we get in there. If we don't find it I'll | 
 | agree to give you my drum and every thing I've got in the world. I | 
 | will, by jings." | 
 |  | 
 | "All right--it's a whiz. When do you say?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Right now, if you say it. Are you strong enough?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Is it far in the cave? I ben on my pins a little, three or four days, | 
 | now, but I can't walk more'n a mile, Tom--least I don't think I could." | 
 |  | 
 | "It's about five mile into there the way anybody but me would go, | 
 | Huck, but there's a mighty short cut that they don't anybody but me | 
 | know about. Huck, I'll take you right to it in a skiff. I'll float the | 
 | skiff down there, and I'll pull it back again all by myself. You | 
 | needn't ever turn your hand over." | 
 |  | 
 | "Less start right off, Tom." | 
 |  | 
 | "All right. We want some bread and meat, and our pipes, and a little | 
 | bag or two, and two or three kite-strings, and some of these | 
 | new-fangled things they call lucifer matches. I tell you, many's | 
 | the time I wished I had some when I was in there before." | 
 |  | 
 | A trifle after noon the boys borrowed a small skiff from a citizen who | 
 | was absent, and got under way at once. When they were several miles | 
 | below "Cave Hollow," Tom said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Now you see this bluff here looks all alike all the way down from the | 
 | cave hollow--no houses, no wood-yards, bushes all alike. But do you see | 
 | that white place up yonder where there's been a landslide? Well, that's | 
 | one of my marks. We'll get ashore, now." | 
 |  | 
 | They landed. | 
 |  | 
 | "Now, Huck, where we're a-standing you could touch that hole I got out | 
 | of with a fishing-pole. See if you can find it." | 
 |  | 
 | Huck searched all the place about, and found nothing. Tom proudly | 
 | marched into a thick clump of sumach bushes and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Here you are! Look at it, Huck; it's the snuggest hole in this | 
 | country. You just keep mum about it. All along I've been wanting to be | 
 | a robber, but I knew I'd got to have a thing like this, and where to | 
 | run across it was the bother. We've got it now, and we'll keep it | 
 | quiet, only we'll let Joe Harper and Ben Rogers in--because of course | 
 | there's got to be a Gang, or else there wouldn't be any style about it. | 
 | Tom Sawyer's Gang--it sounds splendid, don't it, Huck?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, it just does, Tom. And who'll we rob?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, most anybody. Waylay people--that's mostly the way." | 
 |  | 
 | "And kill them?" | 
 |  | 
 | "No, not always. Hive them in the cave till they raise a ransom." | 
 |  | 
 | "What's a ransom?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Money. You make them raise all they can, off'n their friends; and | 
 | after you've kept them a year, if it ain't raised then you kill them. | 
 | That's the general way. Only you don't kill the women. You shut up the | 
 | women, but you don't kill them. They're always beautiful and rich, and | 
 | awfully scared. You take their watches and things, but you always take | 
 | your hat off and talk polite. They ain't anybody as polite as robbers | 
 | --you'll see that in any book. Well, the women get to loving you, and | 
 | after they've been in the cave a week or two weeks they stop crying and | 
 | after that you couldn't get them to leave. If you drove them out they'd | 
 | turn right around and come back. It's so in all the books." | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, it's real bully, Tom. I believe it's better'n to be a pirate." | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, it's better in some ways, because it's close to home and | 
 | circuses and all that." | 
 |  | 
 | By this time everything was ready and the boys entered the hole, Tom | 
 | in the lead. They toiled their way to the farther end of the tunnel, | 
 | then made their spliced kite-strings fast and moved on. A few steps | 
 | brought them to the spring, and Tom felt a shudder quiver all through | 
 | him. He showed Huck the fragment of candle-wick perched on a lump of | 
 | clay against the wall, and described how he and Becky had watched the | 
 | flame struggle and expire. | 
 |  | 
 | The boys began to quiet down to whispers, now, for the stillness and | 
 | gloom of the place oppressed their spirits. They went on, and presently | 
 | entered and followed Tom's other corridor until they reached the | 
 | "jumping-off place." The candles revealed the fact that it was not | 
 | really a precipice, but only a steep clay hill twenty or thirty feet | 
 | high. Tom whispered: | 
 |  | 
 | "Now I'll show you something, Huck." | 
 |  | 
 | He held his candle aloft and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Look as far around the corner as you can. Do you see that? There--on | 
 | the big rock over yonder--done with candle-smoke." | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, it's a CROSS!" | 
 |  | 
 | "NOW where's your Number Two? 'UNDER THE CROSS,' hey? Right yonder's | 
 | where I saw Injun Joe poke up his candle, Huck!" | 
 |  | 
 | Huck stared at the mystic sign awhile, and then said with a shaky voice: | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, less git out of here!" | 
 |  | 
 | "What! and leave the treasure?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes--leave it. Injun Joe's ghost is round about there, certain." | 
 |  | 
 | "No it ain't, Huck, no it ain't. It would ha'nt the place where he | 
 | died--away out at the mouth of the cave--five mile from here." | 
 |  | 
 | "No, Tom, it wouldn't. It would hang round the money. I know the ways | 
 | of ghosts, and so do you." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom began to fear that Huck was right. Misgivings gathered in his | 
 | mind. But presently an idea occurred to him-- | 
 |  | 
 | "Lookyhere, Huck, what fools we're making of ourselves! Injun Joe's | 
 | ghost ain't a going to come around where there's a cross!" | 
 |  | 
 | The point was well taken. It had its effect. | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, I didn't think of that. But that's so. It's luck for us, that | 
 | cross is. I reckon we'll climb down there and have a hunt for that box." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom went first, cutting rude steps in the clay hill as he descended. | 
 | Huck followed. Four avenues opened out of the small cavern which the | 
 | great rock stood in. The boys examined three of them with no result. | 
 | They found a small recess in the one nearest the base of the rock, with | 
 | a pallet of blankets spread down in it; also an old suspender, some | 
 | bacon rind, and the well-gnawed bones of two or three fowls. But there | 
 | was no money-box. The lads searched and researched this place, but in | 
 | vain. Tom said: | 
 |  | 
 | "He said UNDER the cross. Well, this comes nearest to being under the | 
 | cross. It can't be under the rock itself, because that sets solid on | 
 | the ground." | 
 |  | 
 | They searched everywhere once more, and then sat down discouraged. | 
 | Huck could suggest nothing. By-and-by Tom said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Lookyhere, Huck, there's footprints and some candle-grease on the | 
 | clay about one side of this rock, but not on the other sides. Now, | 
 | what's that for? I bet you the money IS under the rock. I'm going to | 
 | dig in the clay." | 
 |  | 
 | "That ain't no bad notion, Tom!" said Huck with animation. | 
 |  | 
 | Tom's "real Barlow" was out at once, and he had not dug four inches | 
 | before he struck wood. | 
 |  | 
 | "Hey, Huck!--you hear that?" | 
 |  | 
 | Huck began to dig and scratch now. Some boards were soon uncovered and | 
 | removed. They had concealed a natural chasm which led under the rock. | 
 | Tom got into this and held his candle as far under the rock as he | 
 | could, but said he could not see to the end of the rift. He proposed to | 
 | explore. He stooped and passed under; the narrow way descended | 
 | gradually. He followed its winding course, first to the right, then to | 
 | the left, Huck at his heels. Tom turned a short curve, by-and-by, and | 
 | exclaimed: | 
 |  | 
 | "My goodness, Huck, lookyhere!" | 
 |  | 
 | It was the treasure-box, sure enough, occupying a snug little cavern, | 
 | along with an empty powder-keg, a couple of guns in leather cases, two | 
 | or three pairs of old moccasins, a leather belt, and some other rubbish | 
 | well soaked with the water-drip. | 
 |  | 
 | "Got it at last!" said Huck, ploughing among the tarnished coins with | 
 | his hand. "My, but we're rich, Tom!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Huck, I always reckoned we'd get it. It's just too good to believe, | 
 | but we HAVE got it, sure! Say--let's not fool around here. Let's snake | 
 | it out. Lemme see if I can lift the box." | 
 |  | 
 | It weighed about fifty pounds. Tom could lift it, after an awkward | 
 | fashion, but could not carry it conveniently. | 
 |  | 
 | "I thought so," he said; "THEY carried it like it was heavy, that day | 
 | at the ha'nted house. I noticed that. I reckon I was right to think of | 
 | fetching the little bags along." | 
 |  | 
 | The money was soon in the bags and the boys took it up to the cross | 
 | rock. | 
 |  | 
 | "Now less fetch the guns and things," said Huck. | 
 |  | 
 | "No, Huck--leave them there. They're just the tricks to have when we | 
 | go to robbing. We'll keep them there all the time, and we'll hold our | 
 | orgies there, too. It's an awful snug place for orgies." | 
 |  | 
 | "What orgies?" | 
 |  | 
 | "I dono. But robbers always have orgies, and of course we've got to | 
 | have them, too. Come along, Huck, we've been in here a long time. It's | 
 | getting late, I reckon. I'm hungry, too. We'll eat and smoke when we | 
 | get to the skiff." | 
 |  | 
 | They presently emerged into the clump of sumach bushes, looked warily | 
 | out, found the coast clear, and were soon lunching and smoking in the | 
 | skiff. As the sun dipped toward the horizon they pushed out and got | 
 | under way. Tom skimmed up the shore through the long twilight, chatting | 
 | cheerily with Huck, and landed shortly after dark. | 
 |  | 
 | "Now, Huck," said Tom, "we'll hide the money in the loft of the | 
 | widow's woodshed, and I'll come up in the morning and we'll count it | 
 | and divide, and then we'll hunt up a place out in the woods for it | 
 | where it will be safe. Just you lay quiet here and watch the stuff till | 
 | I run and hook Benny Taylor's little wagon; I won't be gone a minute." | 
 |  | 
 | He disappeared, and presently returned with the wagon, put the two | 
 | small sacks into it, threw some old rags on top of them, and started | 
 | off, dragging his cargo behind him. When the boys reached the | 
 | Welshman's house, they stopped to rest. Just as they were about to move | 
 | on, the Welshman stepped out and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Hallo, who's that?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Huck and Tom Sawyer." | 
 |  | 
 | "Good! Come along with me, boys, you are keeping everybody waiting. | 
 | Here--hurry up, trot ahead--I'll haul the wagon for you. Why, it's not | 
 | as light as it might be. Got bricks in it?--or old metal?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Old metal," said Tom. | 
 |  | 
 | "I judged so; the boys in this town will take more trouble and fool | 
 | away more time hunting up six bits' worth of old iron to sell to the | 
 | foundry than they would to make twice the money at regular work. But | 
 | that's human nature--hurry along, hurry along!" | 
 |  | 
 | The boys wanted to know what the hurry was about. | 
 |  | 
 | "Never mind; you'll see, when we get to the Widow Douglas'." | 
 |  | 
 | Huck said with some apprehension--for he was long used to being | 
 | falsely accused: | 
 |  | 
 | "Mr. Jones, we haven't been doing nothing." | 
 |  | 
 | The Welshman laughed. | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I don't know, Huck, my boy. I don't know about that. Ain't you | 
 | and the widow good friends?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes. Well, she's ben good friends to me, anyway." | 
 |  | 
 | "All right, then. What do you want to be afraid for?" | 
 |  | 
 | This question was not entirely answered in Huck's slow mind before he | 
 | found himself pushed, along with Tom, into Mrs. Douglas' drawing-room. | 
 | Mr. Jones left the wagon near the door and followed. | 
 |  | 
 | The place was grandly lighted, and everybody that was of any | 
 | consequence in the village was there. The Thatchers were there, the | 
 | Harpers, the Rogerses, Aunt Polly, Sid, Mary, the minister, the editor, | 
 | and a great many more, and all dressed in their best. The widow | 
 | received the boys as heartily as any one could well receive two such | 
 | looking beings. They were covered with clay and candle-grease. Aunt | 
 | Polly blushed crimson with humiliation, and frowned and shook her head | 
 | at Tom. Nobody suffered half as much as the two boys did, however. Mr. | 
 | Jones said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom wasn't at home, yet, so I gave him up; but I stumbled on him and | 
 | Huck right at my door, and so I just brought them along in a hurry." | 
 |  | 
 | "And you did just right," said the widow. "Come with me, boys." | 
 |  | 
 | She took them to a bedchamber and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Now wash and dress yourselves. Here are two new suits of clothes | 
 | --shirts, socks, everything complete. They're Huck's--no, no thanks, | 
 | Huck--Mr. Jones bought one and I the other. But they'll fit both of you. | 
 | Get into them. We'll wait--come down when you are slicked up enough." | 
 |  | 
 | Then she left. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XXXIV | 
 |  | 
 | HUCK said: "Tom, we can slope, if we can find a rope. The window ain't | 
 | high from the ground." | 
 |  | 
 | "Shucks! what do you want to slope for?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I ain't used to that kind of a crowd. I can't stand it. I ain't | 
 | going down there, Tom." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, bother! It ain't anything. I don't mind it a bit. I'll take care | 
 | of you." | 
 |  | 
 | Sid appeared. | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom," said he, "auntie has been waiting for you all the afternoon. | 
 | Mary got your Sunday clothes ready, and everybody's been fretting about | 
 | you. Say--ain't this grease and clay, on your clothes?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Now, Mr. Siddy, you jist 'tend to your own business. What's all this | 
 | blow-out about, anyway?" | 
 |  | 
 | "It's one of the widow's parties that she's always having. This time | 
 | it's for the Welshman and his sons, on account of that scrape they | 
 | helped her out of the other night. And say--I can tell you something, | 
 | if you want to know." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, what?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Why, old Mr. Jones is going to try to spring something on the people | 
 | here to-night, but I overheard him tell auntie to-day about it, as a | 
 | secret, but I reckon it's not much of a secret now. Everybody knows | 
 | --the widow, too, for all she tries to let on she don't. Mr. Jones was | 
 | bound Huck should be here--couldn't get along with his grand secret | 
 | without Huck, you know!" | 
 |  | 
 | "Secret about what, Sid?" | 
 |  | 
 | "About Huck tracking the robbers to the widow's. I reckon Mr. Jones | 
 | was going to make a grand time over his surprise, but I bet you it will | 
 | drop pretty flat." | 
 |  | 
 | Sid chuckled in a very contented and satisfied way. | 
 |  | 
 | "Sid, was it you that told?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, never mind who it was. SOMEBODY told--that's enough." | 
 |  | 
 | "Sid, there's only one person in this town mean enough to do that, and | 
 | that's you. If you had been in Huck's place you'd 'a' sneaked down the | 
 | hill and never told anybody on the robbers. You can't do any but mean | 
 | things, and you can't bear to see anybody praised for doing good ones. | 
 | There--no thanks, as the widow says"--and Tom cuffed Sid's ears and | 
 | helped him to the door with several kicks. "Now go and tell auntie if | 
 | you dare--and to-morrow you'll catch it!" | 
 |  | 
 | Some minutes later the widow's guests were at the supper-table, and a | 
 | dozen children were propped up at little side-tables in the same room, | 
 | after the fashion of that country and that day. At the proper time Mr. | 
 | Jones made his little speech, in which he thanked the widow for the | 
 | honor she was doing himself and his sons, but said that there was | 
 | another person whose modesty-- | 
 |  | 
 | And so forth and so on. He sprung his secret about Huck's share in the | 
 | adventure in the finest dramatic manner he was master of, but the | 
 | surprise it occasioned was largely counterfeit and not as clamorous and | 
 | effusive as it might have been under happier circumstances. However, | 
 | the widow made a pretty fair show of astonishment, and heaped so many | 
 | compliments and so much gratitude upon Huck that he almost forgot the | 
 | nearly intolerable discomfort of his new clothes in the entirely | 
 | intolerable discomfort of being set up as a target for everybody's gaze | 
 | and everybody's laudations. | 
 |  | 
 | The widow said she meant to give Huck a home under her roof and have | 
 | him educated; and that when she could spare the money she would start | 
 | him in business in a modest way. Tom's chance was come. He said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Huck don't need it. Huck's rich." | 
 |  | 
 | Nothing but a heavy strain upon the good manners of the company kept | 
 | back the due and proper complimentary laugh at this pleasant joke. But | 
 | the silence was a little awkward. Tom broke it: | 
 |  | 
 | "Huck's got money. Maybe you don't believe it, but he's got lots of | 
 | it. Oh, you needn't smile--I reckon I can show you. You just wait a | 
 | minute." | 
 |  | 
 | Tom ran out of doors. The company looked at each other with a | 
 | perplexed interest--and inquiringly at Huck, who was tongue-tied. | 
 |  | 
 | "Sid, what ails Tom?" said Aunt Polly. "He--well, there ain't ever any | 
 | making of that boy out. I never--" | 
 |  | 
 | Tom entered, struggling with the weight of his sacks, and Aunt Polly | 
 | did not finish her sentence. Tom poured the mass of yellow coin upon | 
 | the table and said: | 
 |  | 
 | "There--what did I tell you? Half of it's Huck's and half of it's mine!" | 
 |  | 
 | The spectacle took the general breath away. All gazed, nobody spoke | 
 | for a moment. Then there was a unanimous call for an explanation. Tom | 
 | said he could furnish it, and he did. The tale was long, but brimful of | 
 | interest. There was scarcely an interruption from any one to break the | 
 | charm of its flow. When he had finished, Mr. Jones said: | 
 |  | 
 | "I thought I had fixed up a little surprise for this occasion, but it | 
 | don't amount to anything now. This one makes it sing mighty small, I'm | 
 | willing to allow." | 
 |  | 
 | The money was counted. The sum amounted to a little over twelve | 
 | thousand dollars. It was more than any one present had ever seen at one | 
 | time before, though several persons were there who were worth | 
 | considerably more than that in property. | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CHAPTER XXXV | 
 |  | 
 | THE reader may rest satisfied that Tom's and Huck's windfall made a | 
 | mighty stir in the poor little village of St. Petersburg. So vast a | 
 | sum, all in actual cash, seemed next to incredible. It was talked | 
 | about, gloated over, glorified, until the reason of many of the | 
 | citizens tottered under the strain of the unhealthy excitement. Every | 
 | "haunted" house in St. Petersburg and the neighboring villages was | 
 | dissected, plank by plank, and its foundations dug up and ransacked for | 
 | hidden treasure--and not by boys, but men--pretty grave, unromantic | 
 | men, too, some of them. Wherever Tom and Huck appeared they were | 
 | courted, admired, stared at. The boys were not able to remember that | 
 | their remarks had possessed weight before; but now their sayings were | 
 | treasured and repeated; everything they did seemed somehow to be | 
 | regarded as remarkable; they had evidently lost the power of doing and | 
 | saying commonplace things; moreover, their past history was raked up | 
 | and discovered to bear marks of conspicuous originality. The village | 
 | paper published biographical sketches of the boys. | 
 |  | 
 | The Widow Douglas put Huck's money out at six per cent., and Judge | 
 | Thatcher did the same with Tom's at Aunt Polly's request. Each lad had | 
 | an income, now, that was simply prodigious--a dollar for every week-day | 
 | in the year and half of the Sundays. It was just what the minister got | 
 | --no, it was what he was promised--he generally couldn't collect it. A | 
 | dollar and a quarter a week would board, lodge, and school a boy in | 
 | those old simple days--and clothe him and wash him, too, for that | 
 | matter. | 
 |  | 
 | Judge Thatcher had conceived a great opinion of Tom. He said that no | 
 | commonplace boy would ever have got his daughter out of the cave. When | 
 | Becky told her father, in strict confidence, how Tom had taken her | 
 | whipping at school, the Judge was visibly moved; and when she pleaded | 
 | grace for the mighty lie which Tom had told in order to shift that | 
 | whipping from her shoulders to his own, the Judge said with a fine | 
 | outburst that it was a noble, a generous, a magnanimous lie--a lie that | 
 | was worthy to hold up its head and march down through history breast to | 
 | breast with George Washington's lauded Truth about the hatchet! Becky | 
 | thought her father had never looked so tall and so superb as when he | 
 | walked the floor and stamped his foot and said that. She went straight | 
 | off and told Tom about it. | 
 |  | 
 | Judge Thatcher hoped to see Tom a great lawyer or a great soldier some | 
 | day. He said he meant to look to it that Tom should be admitted to the | 
 | National Military Academy and afterward trained in the best law school | 
 | in the country, in order that he might be ready for either career or | 
 | both. | 
 |  | 
 | Huck Finn's wealth and the fact that he was now under the Widow | 
 | Douglas' protection introduced him into society--no, dragged him into | 
 | it, hurled him into it--and his sufferings were almost more than he | 
 | could bear. The widow's servants kept him clean and neat, combed and | 
 | brushed, and they bedded him nightly in unsympathetic sheets that had | 
 | not one little spot or stain which he could press to his heart and know | 
 | for a friend. He had to eat with a knife and fork; he had to use | 
 | napkin, cup, and plate; he had to learn his book, he had to go to | 
 | church; he had to talk so properly that speech was become insipid in | 
 | his mouth; whithersoever he turned, the bars and shackles of | 
 | civilization shut him in and bound him hand and foot. | 
 |  | 
 | He bravely bore his miseries three weeks, and then one day turned up | 
 | missing. For forty-eight hours the widow hunted for him everywhere in | 
 | great distress. The public were profoundly concerned; they searched | 
 | high and low, they dragged the river for his body. Early the third | 
 | morning Tom Sawyer wisely went poking among some old empty hogsheads | 
 | down behind the abandoned slaughter-house, and in one of them he found | 
 | the refugee. Huck had slept there; he had just breakfasted upon some | 
 | stolen odds and ends of food, and was lying off, now, in comfort, with | 
 | his pipe. He was unkempt, uncombed, and clad in the same old ruin of | 
 | rags that had made him picturesque in the days when he was free and | 
 | happy. Tom routed him out, told him the trouble he had been causing, | 
 | and urged him to go home. Huck's face lost its tranquil content, and | 
 | took a melancholy cast. He said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Don't talk about it, Tom. I've tried it, and it don't work; it don't | 
 | work, Tom. It ain't for me; I ain't used to it. The widder's good to | 
 | me, and friendly; but I can't stand them ways. She makes me get up just | 
 | at the same time every morning; she makes me wash, they comb me all to | 
 | thunder; she won't let me sleep in the woodshed; I got to wear them | 
 | blamed clothes that just smothers me, Tom; they don't seem to any air | 
 | git through 'em, somehow; and they're so rotten nice that I can't set | 
 | down, nor lay down, nor roll around anywher's; I hain't slid on a | 
 | cellar-door for--well, it 'pears to be years; I got to go to church and | 
 | sweat and sweat--I hate them ornery sermons! I can't ketch a fly in | 
 | there, I can't chaw. I got to wear shoes all Sunday. The widder eats by | 
 | a bell; she goes to bed by a bell; she gits up by a bell--everything's | 
 | so awful reg'lar a body can't stand it." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, everybody does that way, Huck." | 
 |  | 
 | "Tom, it don't make no difference. I ain't everybody, and I can't | 
 | STAND it. It's awful to be tied up so. And grub comes too easy--I don't | 
 | take no interest in vittles, that way. I got to ask to go a-fishing; I | 
 | got to ask to go in a-swimming--dern'd if I hain't got to ask to do | 
 | everything. Well, I'd got to talk so nice it wasn't no comfort--I'd got | 
 | to go up in the attic and rip out awhile, every day, to git a taste in | 
 | my mouth, or I'd a died, Tom. The widder wouldn't let me smoke; she | 
 | wouldn't let me yell, she wouldn't let me gape, nor stretch, nor | 
 | scratch, before folks--" [Then with a spasm of special irritation and | 
 | injury]--"And dad fetch it, she prayed all the time! I never see such a | 
 | woman! I HAD to shove, Tom--I just had to. And besides, that school's | 
 | going to open, and I'd a had to go to it--well, I wouldn't stand THAT, | 
 | Tom. Looky here, Tom, being rich ain't what it's cracked up to be. It's | 
 | just worry and worry, and sweat and sweat, and a-wishing you was dead | 
 | all the time. Now these clothes suits me, and this bar'l suits me, and | 
 | I ain't ever going to shake 'em any more. Tom, I wouldn't ever got into | 
 | all this trouble if it hadn't 'a' ben for that money; now you just take | 
 | my sheer of it along with your'n, and gimme a ten-center sometimes--not | 
 | many times, becuz I don't give a dern for a thing 'thout it's tollable | 
 | hard to git--and you go and beg off for me with the widder." | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, Huck, you know I can't do that. 'Tain't fair; and besides if | 
 | you'll try this thing just a while longer you'll come to like it." | 
 |  | 
 | "Like it! Yes--the way I'd like a hot stove if I was to set on it long | 
 | enough. No, Tom, I won't be rich, and I won't live in them cussed | 
 | smothery houses. I like the woods, and the river, and hogsheads, and | 
 | I'll stick to 'em, too. Blame it all! just as we'd got guns, and a | 
 | cave, and all just fixed to rob, here this dern foolishness has got to | 
 | come up and spile it all!" | 
 |  | 
 | Tom saw his opportunity-- | 
 |  | 
 | "Lookyhere, Huck, being rich ain't going to keep me back from turning | 
 | robber." | 
 |  | 
 | "No! Oh, good-licks; are you in real dead-wood earnest, Tom?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Just as dead earnest as I'm sitting here. But Huck, we can't let you | 
 | into the gang if you ain't respectable, you know." | 
 |  | 
 | Huck's joy was quenched. | 
 |  | 
 | "Can't let me in, Tom? Didn't you let me go for a pirate?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, but that's different. A robber is more high-toned than what a | 
 | pirate is--as a general thing. In most countries they're awful high up | 
 | in the nobility--dukes and such." | 
 |  | 
 | "Now, Tom, hain't you always ben friendly to me? You wouldn't shet me | 
 | out, would you, Tom? You wouldn't do that, now, WOULD you, Tom?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Huck, I wouldn't want to, and I DON'T want to--but what would people | 
 | say? Why, they'd say, 'Mph! Tom Sawyer's Gang! pretty low characters in | 
 | it!' They'd mean you, Huck. You wouldn't like that, and I wouldn't." | 
 |  | 
 | Huck was silent for some time, engaged in a mental struggle. Finally | 
 | he said: | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I'll go back to the widder for a month and tackle it and see if | 
 | I can come to stand it, if you'll let me b'long to the gang, Tom." | 
 |  | 
 | "All right, Huck, it's a whiz! Come along, old chap, and I'll ask the | 
 | widow to let up on you a little, Huck." | 
 |  | 
 | "Will you, Tom--now will you? That's good. If she'll let up on some of | 
 | the roughest things, I'll smoke private and cuss private, and crowd | 
 | through or bust. When you going to start the gang and turn robbers?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Oh, right off. We'll get the boys together and have the initiation | 
 | to-night, maybe." | 
 |  | 
 | "Have the which?" | 
 |  | 
 | "Have the initiation." | 
 |  | 
 | "What's that?" | 
 |  | 
 | "It's to swear to stand by one another, and never tell the gang's | 
 | secrets, even if you're chopped all to flinders, and kill anybody and | 
 | all his family that hurts one of the gang." | 
 |  | 
 | "That's gay--that's mighty gay, Tom, I tell you." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, I bet it is. And all that swearing's got to be done at | 
 | midnight, in the lonesomest, awfulest place you can find--a ha'nted | 
 | house is the best, but they're all ripped up now." | 
 |  | 
 | "Well, midnight's good, anyway, Tom." | 
 |  | 
 | "Yes, so it is. And you've got to swear on a coffin, and sign it with | 
 | blood." | 
 |  | 
 | "Now, that's something LIKE! Why, it's a million times bullier than | 
 | pirating. I'll stick to the widder till I rot, Tom; and if I git to be | 
 | a reg'lar ripper of a robber, and everybody talking 'bout it, I reckon | 
 | she'll be proud she snaked me in out of the wet." | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 |  | 
 | CONCLUSION | 
 |  | 
 | SO endeth this chronicle. It being strictly a history of a BOY, it | 
 | must stop here; the story could not go much further without becoming | 
 | the history of a MAN. When one writes a novel about grown people, he | 
 | knows exactly where to stop--that is, with a marriage; but when he | 
 | writes of juveniles, he must stop where he best can. | 
 |  | 
 | Most of the characters that perform in this book still live, and are | 
 | prosperous and happy. Some day it may seem worth while to take up the | 
 | story of the younger ones again and see what sort of men and women they | 
 | turned out to be; therefore it will be wisest not to reveal any of that | 
 | part of their lives at present. |